Doris Lessing`s belief in wholeness of the self and cosmic harmony
Transcription
Doris Lessing`s belief in wholeness of the self and cosmic harmony
U N IV E R S ID A D E FEDERAL DE SA N TA C A T A R IN A PÓS-GRADUAÇXO EM I N G L Ê S E L IT E R A T U R A COR RESPON DEN TE D O R I S L E S S I N G * S B E L IE F I N W HOLENESS OF THE S E L F AND C O S M IC HARMONY Por M IR IA M HENNI G D is s e r i a ç S o s u b m e tid a à U n iv e r s id a d e F e d e r a l de Santa C ata ri p a r a a o b t e n ç ã o d o g r a u d e M e s t r e em L e t r a s . F Io r ia n ó p o li s M a rço d e 1 9 9 0 Esta fin a l d is s e r ta ç ã o fo i ju lg a d a adequada e aprovada p e l o p ro g ra m a d e P ó s - G r a d u a ç 2 o em I n g l ê s em sua fo r m a p a r a a o b te n ç S o do grau de M ESTRE EM L E T R A S OpçSo In g l ê s e L it e r a t u r a Correspondente Dra. Bernadete P aso ld COORDENADORA Dra. S u s a n a B. F un ck O R IE N T A D O R A BANCA EXAM INADORA: Dra. S u s a n a B. F un c k Çk.o I âJ j l ^ a ^ r t o L Dra. F lo rian ó p o lis, 2 6 d e m arço d e 1 Q Q 0 . Bernadete P aso ld Ao meu p a i . A G R A D E C IMENTOS A g r a d e ç o d e fo r m a e s p e c i a l a E lisa b e th , M a rtin e André H en n ig ; à p r o f e s s o r a e o r i e n t a d o r a S u s a n a B. Funck; à c o o rd e n a d o ra do C u r s o d e Pós- graduaçSo» Dra. Bernadete Pasold; à to d o s a o s a m ig o s q u e d i v i d i r a m descobertas e tem ores; à CAPES; à A n n e l i e s e R. C o rse u il p e lo m aterial ao R o g é rio L u c ia n o p e lo v e rsã o f i n a l aos co le g as e pro fesso res F lo rian ó p o lis, de p e s q u isa ; da t e s e ; da Pós- graduaçSo. 2 6 d e m arço d e 1 9 9 0 . ABSTRACT The and in co un tercultu re Europe revealed human r e l a t i o n s h i p s , the h ov els C19693 The and in R o n ald the fo r usual w ays an of a the 1960’ s w ays Cl 9 6 2 3 , in of the U .S . a p p ro a ch in g Lessing F o u r - G a ted in to D o ris p er c e iv in g d iv id e d The Descent w riter of the s y s te m s a n d t h e e n v ir o n m e n t . unorthodox th e o re tic ia n , sc h izo p h ren ia , of radical N o te b o o k B ritish Lain g , and p o litical B riefin g D. cultural n ew G o lden tw e n tie th - c e n tu ry change m ovem ents L essin g the of C 1 9 7 1 ), a A lo n g w ith p sy c h ia trist and re v o lu tio n ize d and C ity proposed w o r ld . B ritish self H ell In the the concepts voyage to of in n e r s p a c e a n d tim e . The purpose L essin g ’ s w ay tr a n s fo rm in g u niversal so that in a of of it n ew way. an In able The beco m es d i f f i c u l t is p erc eiv in g in du ality . we a r e my s t u d y v ie w , to w hen t h e e q u a l p sy c h ia tric kn o w ledge and p r a c t ic e life d e v e lo p m e n t i n and the w orld, the study of The of human I d e c id e d reco g n itio n the of and hum an "s w e e t In order of q u e stio n s w ay o f fo llo w a to of and to tality sa n ity L essin g of du ality b ein g ’ s w h ic h c o n f i n e , b e in g s. to human a n o vels, the p r o t a g o n is t s ’ self d i g n i t y among human b e i n g s In the three d e v e lo p m e n t d iv id e d reach n eglected. regu late h er the we h a v e t o work on our understand attem pt trace the auth entic h er to to w e" is the frig h te n and re c o g n ize the u n d e rsta n d in g c h ro n o lo g ic a l the s e lf order in L e s s i n g ’ s w orks. fin d in g s of my in v e stig a tio n have led me to the r e c o g n itio n of the self- kn ow ledge. work w ith In the h a r m o n io u s l y . m e r g in g Lynda a The in to H ell, and understand Lessing th is L essing the planet the are d ig n ity is of absorbed any human b e i n g ' s in tim a te ly p eo p le, communi t y a n d cosm os. Quest, can by In W u lf to a the w ith about id e n titie s in betw een and of a the voyage is Descent able o p p o site the can fo r he h ierarch ica l in to forces. re latio n sh ip s. the su rv iv al u n d e rsta n d in g h ealth y them p ro ta g o nists, learn Crystal the able n e c e ssitie s u n ific a tio n to is liv e B r ie fin g d e v e lo p m e n t the of opposed harm o n y in n e c e ssitie s the that lin k e d of and so of hope A nna shows tw o exp e rie n c e see of one liv in g . of is C ity of n e c e ssity not she M a r th a w ays deep Notebook, another fu sio n all the women and C harles does For equal w ith The through G olden F o u r - G a te d C old ridge re v o lu tio n ize The tw o self universe. p ro tag o n ists' concept of of of the group, RESUMO A década em de propostas proteção ao a os teó rico cultural do ego in g lê s, n a m a n e ir a da Esta du alid ad e L essing , c o m p re e n d er chegar a u tê n tic o a uma momento a para to talid a d e "d o c e em que p re ju d ic a d a . Em e n s in a m e n t o s e a se do três fe ito em uma s e q ü ê n c i a de perceber o eu e o co n clu sSes das também propôs uma o mundo. E la eu é H ell d iv id id o o perceber da nós" e e A nova ser os c ro n o ló g ic a e hum ana na o p in iã o m a n e ir a de de se d ific u lta d a no seres Lessing hum ano. d iv id id o te n ta tiv a hum anos q u e stio n a p siq u iá trico s do ser eu traçar d u alid ad e uma pode liv ro s, o de c o n h e c id a , a entre d e se n v o lv im e n to das p erso n ag e n s As in to com um a n t i - p s i q u i a t r a hum ano. m undo, C l9 6 2 3 , a Descent estudo ser do como p o lític a N o te b o o k c o m p re e n d e r chegue p rá tic a am en dron tam e r e g u la m a v i d a fo i fo r e Lain g : autora ig u a ld a d e seus G o lden p r e c is a ser sa n id a d e a o rg a n iza ç ã o r e c o n h e c im e n to que tem a s e sq u izo fre n ia , meu e universal D o ris se R o n a l d D. do a Lessing jun tam en te no de de de t r a n s f o r m á - lo . de The D o ris h ab itu a is p ro p ó sito d e se n v o lv im e n to fo r m a s Em in g le s a c o n tra c u ltu rais relaçã o e B rie fin g co n ceitos v ia g e m a o i n t e r i o r O em novas C19692) m a n e ir a s re v o lu c io n o u em m o v im en to s m e io - a m b ie n te . escrito ra m udança n a s ric a h u m a n o s, T h e F o u r - G a t ed C i t y Cl 9 7 1 3 , foi in o v a d o r a s r e lac io n a m e n to s e 60 que é os co n fin am , O estudo das obras para houvesse que, a nas m a n e ir a s percepção do p rin c ip a is. a n á lise s lev aram ao c o n h e c im e n t o da um p ro fu n da n e c e ssid ad e a u t o - c o n h e c im ento. trabalhar c o n v iv e r com a s com dos Em T h e duas elas de p ro tago nistas G o lden m u lh e r e s fo rm a Notebook, que são e l a r ic a e d esenvolverem Anna mesma d e p ro fu n da. C i t y no s m o s tr a a n e c e s s i d a d e d e s e m e r g u lh a r outra pessoa universo . A rev o lu c io n ar C harles todas a não as da ela, p laneta d ig n id ad e de grupo, por se : v iv e r. um C r i s t a l da dos Já na em entre c o m u n id a d e e cosm os. ao fu n d o é capaz os nas do de opostos. relaçSes hum ano n ecessariam en te h u m a n o s, pode B riefin g , v ia g e m esperança seres p ró p rio opostas de se n v o lv im e n to estão Four- Gated do u n ific a ç ã o , h a r m o n ia nenhum a o de a na id e n t id a d e de id e n tid a d e s de consegue m a n e ira The c o n h e c im e n t o exp eriê n cia n e c e ssid a d e do ao duas m a n e ir a s desta Para so b re v iv ê n c ia saudável de p ro jeta h ie rá rq u ic a s. c o m p re e n s ã o chegar é a b so rv id o através c o m p reen der se fu sã o W atk in s do e g o e , Lessing para W ulf o e a lig a d o s à c o n ceito T A B LE OF C O N TE N TS C hapter I - INTRODUCTORY CHAPTER Chapter II - THE GO LDEN NOTEBOOK . . ............................................ 34 Chapter III - THE FOUR-GATED C I T Y ............................ .................... 64 Chapter IV - B R IE F I N G FOR A DESCENT I N T O H E L L ................... 94 Chapter V - CON CLU SION .......................... ............................................ 121 ....................... ..................................................................... .. . 1 31 B IB L IO G R A P H Y ............ .................................. bl C HAPTER 1 INTRODUCTORY CHAPTER Much exp lo re a tten tio n in has g iv e n in the deep ocean fragm ents of who c l i m b t h e h i g h e s t courage, to through th e p eo p le outer been D o r is who travel space Lessing , unorthodox urgent and F our- G ated Cl 9 7 1 } 3 of Lessing C ity the u n d e rsta n d in g p ro ject of and the the n ew so lid ity frag m e n ta ry spaces p lan ets. B ritish and is in The G o lden B rie fin g of the of and of p eo p le and r e e sta b lish oceans and these are A c co rd in g and R. t im e N o teb o o k - D. an the C 1 9 6 2 D ,1 The Descent a and of in to groups a nd e xp e rie n c e s s e n s e and u n d ersta n d in g through contact t h r o u g h t h e k n o w le d g e o f t h e n e c e s s i t i e s -Hell en tering voyages, a ch ie v e a and c o n scio u sn ess. th eir w alls, persons our p ro tago nists in to th e o re tic ia n , in fo r trav ellin g frag ility v isio n s, n o velist, r eq u ired through reality However, cu ltu ral The p r o t a g o n is t s , and sh ip , who to prove r e s is t a n c e t im e a n d s p a c e o f and n e c e ssitie s n ig h tm arish selves aware C1969D2 w it h t h e v o y a g e i n . test is peo p le a human b e i n g h a s t o j o i n . p sy c h ia trist im p o r t a n t to through, d is t a n t toward other jo u r n e y to e x p lo r e th e in n e r D o r is alon e tw e n tie th - c e n tu ry L ain g , a w recked p e a k s a n d m o u n ta in s not t h e o n l y w o r t h y p r o j e c t s to lite r a tu r e w ith dream s their o f r e - tu rn in g to a c o s m ic harm ony. In and the three p rep aratio ns w o rk s fo r m e n tio n e d , the voyage Lessing in portrays through the n ec essities aspect of d iv isio n . fo rm s, The in n e r sp irals is su ffe rin g w ish sp lit and part the change, fin d and of by v io le n c e r e c o n c ile c o n fro n tatio n of sam e reality out and d iv id e d a new exp e rie n c e s presence o f a g u id e in d iv id u a ls. conseq uently, s ta rtin g m ental a the as In so c ial tran sfo rm s and fin ish in g h o sp itals. tran sfo rm atio n the future of the c o s m ic harm o n y i s Very sim ilar the voyage about d u rin g the p sy c h ia trist s im ilar It of hatred the w ay p lanet if of w ay to human for the but, at M any the re c o n c ilia tio n t im e s and Joy in very rarely co m p reh en sio n, as in to w e ll as rela tin g succeeds t im e a n d m a i n l y w h ic h , co n tin u o u s en tering in th is to p eo p le kn o w ledge g u id in g sc h izo p h ren ic a of the L e ss in g uses the sense of as the presupposes and sense, the act le a v in g call and of for q u e stio n self and of not a c h ie v e d . d isc u ssio n s about the d iv isio n s in and also about s c h izo p h re n ia six tie s, in the w o rk s of called concepts a llow s transcend life the in to cla ssifie d of the terror the three n o v els, of therapy and a lso p o ssib le term s a the but is up o n ly in d iv id u a l fu n c tio n h e r /h is no t it in fin ish e d d e stru c tiv e The voyage psychotherapy is and t im e s opens L e s s in g ’ s three n o vels, in the lost terror and f r i e n d . voyager of been the and dem onstrates fear order. U n fo rtun ately , U su ally , crude d estru c tio n . because of the t h e r a p i s t ’ s lack lo v e. c re a tiv e fo rces such p sy c h o th erap y to show i t s and kn o w ledge. forces fin d m in d , the d isc o v e ry that frig h te n in g it and has personal tim e , e x p e rie n c e w hat and w h ic h of t h e movement a n d and of a body c itie s, so m eth ing r e la tio n sh ip s the outer brought to b u ild betw een R o n ald of D. m adness L ain g . and an of the are unorthodox present, B ritish Both L a in g and L e s s i n g san ity d u rin g th is self, share decade - concepts w h ic h r e v o lu tio n ize The F e m ale in te r p r e t the order M alady headquarters of she h im presents reality of the th in gs. as the In of the a u th ority at E laine traditio n i n s a n i t y ".4 and the Sho w alter E n gland chapter in the sam e as analyzes "t h e d e d icated E n g lish t im e in global to Lain g , a n tip sy c h ia try movement: W it h t h e p u b l i c a t i o n o f T h e D i v i d e d S e l f , i n 1 9 6 0 , h e becam e t h e m entor o f t h e c o u n t e r c u l t u r e i n a l l of its p o litical, p sy c h ed elic , m y stic a l, and e sp e c ia lly artistic m a n ife sta tio n s. H is books p r o v i d e d t e x t s f o r t h e New L e f t , t h e d r u g c u l t u r e , a n d t h e E a s t e r n r e l i g i o u s r e v i v a l , a s w e ll a s f o r t h e n a s c e n t wom en’ s m ovem ent. L a i n g ’ s c o n c e p t s o f m adn ess and s a n ity , the self, and the Other p e r v a d e some o f t h e most im p o r t a n t E n g l i s h w r i t i n g of the decade. In L essin g , the k in d t h e w ay c h a r a c t e r s a r e d i a g n o s e d a s s c h i z o p h r e n i c of in trig u e s v isio n ary the reader betw een the d o c t o r ’ s creates such a m utual at the that u n d e rsta n d in g and it change, fragm en ts, in the p o te n tia litie s w ith nature person, the Laing ’ s v ie w and is an in a readin g. the have The p a tie n t’ s e v id e n t, exten sio n fo r of tra n sfo rm a tio n p ro p h e tic Lessin g , the and children w ith groups in but and of them selv es. and order of life c o n tr a d ic tio n power that m e a n in g o n ly of lo v e ap p reh en sio n of the usual not o n ly th e s i t u a t i o n o f c o lle c tiv ity of towards w ays of co m p artm e n ts. L a i n g a nd L e s s i n g s t r e s s b e in g first p atien ts T h e s c h i z o p h r e n i c ’ s more s e n s i t i v e im p lie s liv in g in these d ia g n o s is an a b y ss can b rid g e i t . reality attitu de and to so c ie ty ’ s better also , and p eo p le who So, d e c id e d sic k I e sp e c ia lly , liv e b eh av io r understand t h e human ^ the h arm o n io u sly to study a cc o rd in g L e s s i n g 's w orld the to and fu n d a m e n t her co n sisten t id e a s the danger h o s p ita ls by of a nd so c ie ty out o f d u rin g sc h izo p h re n ia as su b m issio n so c ia l to change san ity fro m study of a a the general and c h a ra c te riza tio n the b e in g n o n - b e in g i n and acting w ill d u rin g the re la tio n h elp six ties of s c h izo p h re n ia 60s in w ill be 1960, L ain g q u e s tio n s human b e i n g s another center be man or of a the in c itie s the each w ill of the b eh av io r context w ill be aw are m ental in te rp re ta tio n of of c larity and order h ig h e r and w ay of se e in g and u niverse. The the out in the chapters. But stud ies of about the actio n , and D iv id e d betw een p. 2 3 D . of of in L ain g action s h is v ie w in the p ublish ed 1967. personhood, the e x is te n c e of t o d a y ? C an a man b e o rig in S e l f * 5, a nd sic k n e ss fr o m o n e p ublish ed and b e h a v in g so c ie ty ’ s concept the e xp erien c in g why h e c h a n g e d The of of p ointed of of o n ly e x p e rie n c in g , E xp e rie n c e 7 , the p o s s i b i l i t y of CTPE, concept L a i n g ’ s tw o w orks p u b l i s h e d a n a ly sis: of a fo llo w in g u n d ersta n d in g a n a ly sin g and is to and fu n c tio n and exp e rie n c e a p eo p le, general re v o lu tio n a ry the persons as control in many fr o m not person, our and rules the Laing ’ s the w o m an ?" to concept other betw een starts move of in for th eir and houses, to th e o th er. ba sic L ain g L ain g among o v erv iew and The P o l i t i c s When first as the b e h a v in g , a of n o vels of to to clo se dev elo p re sista n c e a lso such break tendency, see power p sy c h ia try . who six tie s rules v isio n three those L ain g strong space one through of I of everybody. the but context. a n a ly sis the fear and s c h izo p h re n ia u n d e rsta n d in g the c o n fin in g Lessin g v isio n a ry to ack n o w led ges create defences B o th a p sy c h o lo g ic al co n trib u to r in stitu tio n a lize d of in persons: actual d e fin e s and has a self person a curiou s he “ Can w ith as a w ay of re latin g e xp erien c e to b e h a v io r : When tw o Cor m ore} p e r s o n s a r e i n r e l a t i o n , the b e h a v io r o f each tow ards th e other i s m ed iated by the e x p a r ia r ic e by each of the other, and the e x p e r i e n c e o f e a c h i s m e d ia t e d b y t h e b e h a v i o r o f e ac h . T h ere i s no c o n t i g u i t y betw een th e b e h a v io r o f o n e p e r s o n a n d t h a t o f t h e o t h e r . Much human b e h a v i o r c a n b e s e e n a s a u n i l a t e r a l or b i l a t e r a l attem pt to e lim in ate e x p e rie n c e . A person may t r e a t a n o t h e r a s t h o u g h h e w er e n o t a p e r s o n , a n d h e may a c t h i m s e l f a s t h o u g h h e w er e n o t a p e r s o n . There is no c o n tig u ity betw een one p e r s o n 's e x p e r i e n c e a n d a n o t h e r 's . My e x p e r i e n c e o f y o u i s a l w a y s m e d i a t e d t h r o u g h your b e h a v i o r . B e h a v io r t h a t i s th e d ir e c t co n seq uen ce o f im p act, as of o n e b i l l i a r d b a l l h i t t i n g a n o t h e r , or e x p e r i e n c e d ire c tly tr a n s m itte d to e x p e rie n c e , is not p e r s o n a l . C T P E , p. 25 3 So. when Laing e xp e rie n c e o f lin k s says: th is w hat most o f B ut Laing c o n d itio n the others is "M y room i s out is there in p eo p le d iv id e in t o sees one exp e rie n c e of that "p e r s o n s " a lie n atio n and no t in sid e my t h e ro o m " CT P E , in n e r are a n d o u te r d iffic u lt in s e n sitiv ity My p. 2 1 3 , he w orlds. to to head. fin d . w hat we Our and are. We w i l l f i n d n o i n t e l l i g i b i l i t y i n b e h a v i o r i f we s e e i t a s a n i n - e s s e n t i a l p h a s e i n an e s s e n t i a l l y in h u m a n p r o c e s s . We h a v e h a d a c c o u n t s o f men a s anim als, men as m a c h in e s , men as b io c h e m ic a l com plexes, w i t h c e r t a i n w ays o f t h e i r own, but t h e r e r e m a in s t h e g r e a t e s t d i f f i c u l t y i n a c h i e v i n g a human u n d e r s t a n d i n g o f man i n human t e r m s . C T P E , p. 28- 93 L ain g co n sid ers c o rru p tiv e product our w ay o f of in tro je c tio n "n o r m a lit y " re la tin g r e p re ssio n , and other as to peo p le: de n ia l, a very d e stru c tiv e "W h a t we c a l l and "n o r m a l" i s a sp litting , p ro je c tio n , fo r m s o f d e s t r u c t i v e a c t i o n on e x p e r i e n c e " 6 CT P E . p. 2 7 ) . B e h a v io r m a n ip u la tio n and therapy, co n tro l, the e x p e r ie n c e of fo r w h ic h in sta n c e , favo rs the is a te c h n iq u e b e h a v io r rather of than the p atien t. A n y t e c h n i q u e c o n c e r n e d w it h t h e o t h e r w i t h o u t t h e self, w ith b e h a v io r to the ex c lu sio n of e x p e r ie n c e , w ith the r e l a t i o n s h i p to th e n e g le c t o f th e p erso n s i n r e l a t i o n , w ith th e i n d i v i d u a l s t o t h e e x c l u s i o n o f t h e i r r e l a t i o n s h i p s , a n d most o f a l l , w i t h a n o b je c t - t o - b e c h a n g e d r a t h e r t h a n a p e r s o n - to - b e accepted, sim p ly perpetuates the d i s e a s e i t p u r p o r t s t o c u r e . C T P E , p. 5 3 ) It calls the is o n ly th is process o n ly w ay in te r a c tio n n egative. the n o - th in g , and of at a who b e in g , our crave" have You p. 4 3 ) . t r o d d e n a n d kno w n others who darkness, liv e in the can be quoted rather of by to cre a te the the of p seu d o - realities, acts the of cre atio n voyage p a t h t o t h e en d o f in , state of p o s itiv e the "t h e of p .3 8 ). we of any Some take to be g iv e us d esp ise persons th e end o f p. 4 5 ) . w here In fath o m less we these in to out pseudo- w ants, that or human p .3 7 ). so m ething CTPE, tim e , n o n - b e in g , of CT P E , w hat as c re a tio n , p re - c o n d itio n e v e ry th in g " it n o n - b e in g source, n o n - b e in g in of Lain g , b e in g " L ain g cap acity e ith e r in je c ts of w h ic h i s reach of a n d t h e e n d o f l i g h t " CT P E , a occur. The a b ility can a b ility the Through "t h e but to of p seu do - v alu es, CT P E , as silen c e aware epoch w h ic h the have our p len titu d e gro ud lessn ess beco m e present the end o f had of of b e in g change e x p e r ie n c e and b e l i e v e s Sartre, o rig in a l a a n n ih ila tio n . g iv e n , to zone bo tto m less our the an b e in g . that our because create peo p le p eo p le "in not in to few attem pt prevent A c co rd in g w orld, fact, to upon "d o e s action tran sac tio n a l happens c o nstructio n b e in g through th is and have space, T h e r e ar,e zone of. n o th in g really re latio n . path And in a analo gy Ita ly m eans Laing p oints re g io n w ith in e m p tin e ss , silen c e in Laing ’ s 1979, su g gestiv en ess out of m u s ic h elp s b e h in d sile n c e , that do p eo p le not Sobre us and not a who h a v e meet Loucos to is o n ly e trodden of th is em p tin e ss. S3os, realize source the An p ub lish ed ric h n e ss in and sim p le sounds and m elo dies: O u v in d o Bach, ou q ualq u er outra m ú sic a, v o cô c o m eça a o u v ir a s n o t a s . . . Aqui 1 o a q u e v o c ê r e a g e , e q u e t r a d u z a s e u modo, é a re la ç ã o e n t r e as n o t a s , e n S o a s n o t a s por s i mesmas. . . E q u a l ó o o p o s t o d o som ? O b v i a m e n t e , o s i l ê n c i o . O f a t o é , portanto, que as notas c riam uma ilu s S o c in tila n te , fo r m a n d o o s ilê n cio em t r a m a s , ou m ó d u lo s d i f e r e n t e s . He co n clu des oceano tram a do by say ing silê n cio . de silê n cio - C on seq uen tly , "t h e betw een CT P E , them " n o th in g and co n sciou s p o ssib le Then, a but also co n sciou s attem pt este oceano também p .413. of do to que é a b e in g It o te c id o - isto uma is the a ll th in gs that our through touch and lo v e i n u n ify s im p l e s m e n t e o of sile n c e stand é lin g u a g e m ". w hen not é, revela da o n ly O nly sonoro p r é - c o n d iç S o is active. hear, a ctio n s "o ground of zone to s e e , the E that we b e in g th is is a p lace not e x p e rie n c e a never is o la te d and reach re la tio n o n ly is e xp e rie n c e d but are in teg rate w hat part of it w ay. of has a been fragm en ted . Lain g also m y stific a tio n re c o g n ize s of e x p e rie n c e c o m p artm en talizin g of p eo p le a v o c a b u la ry and o f w hat is really and a rh eto ric among th eir d e fin itio n s, h ap p e n in g r e m in d s of groups m o rality w h ic h n e c e ssitie s. fo r h im in sta n c e , of and in sist a on The em p lo ym en t that m asquerade O rw ell’s t im e : "T h e 8 ch o ice and of syntax c irc u m sc rib es exp erien c ed . the facts ch ildren Lain g that is on u nd er m ost lo v e" up a to to liv e c o n sid ers L ain g liv e s. everyone, We each of the ghosts can everyw here but be ghosts to who a r e , in in fact, the of v io le n ce goes exp e rie n c e "O n ly by a ch iev ed a is the our c iv iliza tio n p .763. c iv iliza tio n , u n re a lity p eo p le among c h i l d r e n 's and b y each we our and other fo u nd CTPE, of of e v e ry th in g . to creates work of have be id e o lo g ie s . the th is a d ju stm e n t falsity of us, much o f to even larg ely of d e fin e s ed u c atio n on is o urselves the and The act own d e s t r u c t i o n " about are S o litu d e of are d estru c tio n re la tiv e to it s talks on that The “ facts*' im p in g e m e n t adults d e stru c tio n in b asically re latio n sh ip s. our the v io latio n a p p are n tly d riv e n When p .593. that fu rth er d ev astatio n name act p .623. the perpetrated usual CT P E , outrageous cap acity that The goes CT P E , w ays th is p o litical w h ic h it of been way sense exam p le "S p e c ific a ly o u rselv es. o p e n in g a a in stu d ied " the has is manner in another that is the are c ritic ize s v io le n ce v o cabu lary In d e e d , e x p e rie n c e : us and who p eo p le are who of the ghosts talk in essen tial, he in about nowhere. Each p e r s o n , not b e in g h im s e lf e it h e r to h im s e lf or t h e o t h e r , j u s t a s t h e o t h e r i s n o t h i m s e l f t o h i m s e l f or t o u s , i n b e in g another fo r another n e i t h e r r e c o g n i z e s h i m s e l f i n t h e o t h e r , nor t h e other i n h im s e lf. Hence b e in g at le a s t a do uble a b s e n c e , h a u n t e d b y t h e g h o s t o f h i s own m u r d e r e d s e l f , no w onder m o dern man i s a d d i c t e d t o o t h e r persons, and the m ore a d d ic te d , the less s a t i s f i e d , t h e more l o n e l y . CT P E , p. 74 3 We a r e l o n e l y i n our and c r e a t in g out o f L ain g c o m m u n ity , th is c lassifie s in ou r groups and i n s i s t on b e i n g lo n e lin e ss. our in d iv id u a lity in three ba sic c a te g o rie s: the Other, in stan ce, fo r personal us r e s e n t ___ ___ not so its to also a in te rm s a our of lo g ic a lly does "o n e of of a not of dare in to fit k in d re c ip ro c a l so litu d e , to a us I of a to m o s a ic th is about so m eo ne sam e t im e the w ith o u t tra n sfe rin g a there presence to "o n e k in d of fit to g u ilt annoys, t h e m ", of we a and m akes of to e x i s t of a "Y e t th in k CT P E , re c ip ro c a l at We other as of elsew h ere" We a r e p lace. parts How a to of can a we when we c o n fo r m th is There CTPE, true d iffic u lt co lle c tio n in e sse n tia lity n o fr e e d o m . the p .845. the is and I CTPE, no freedo m "In act although absence w h ic h m ould. fo r we in fin ity ” sees and re sp e c tiv e B r ie fin g w hat on u s a n d w h i c h , u n ity is "W e e xp e rie n c e , to w h ic h pattern Them: of d iffe re n tly : presence: everyw here p ro tago nist thin k acts to but sp ira l act There o m n ip o t e n t is they of lack p lace? appears that e xp erien c e, p re- estab lish ed and the e xp e rie n c e s cannot act d i f f e r e n t l y " in d iffe re n c e , W a t k i n s ,t h e th in k is: and own th is shapes p r e - d e s ig n e d to it the a group th a t allow A nd We c o n fo r m not at v e rtig in o u s m e c h a n is m , t h e m ". re latio n sh ip s break. w h ic h we about sim p ly how we t h i n k c a n make n o d i f f e r e n c e , part are a ctio n s our and We a r e p a r t sam e t i m e , When talking We "t h in g " connects in p . 7 8 - 9 ). are are Us. The Other that governs ev ery o n e i s ev ery o n e i n h is p o s i t i o n , no t o f s e l f , b u t a s o t h e r . E v e r y s e l f , h o w e v e r , d is a v o w s b e i n g h i m s e l f t h a t o t h e r t h a t h e i s for th e O th e r. The Other i s n o t h in g b e c a u s e o f the other. The other is everyw here elsew h ere. C T P E .p . 9 2 ) e x p erien c e, on we and p r e s e n c e w h e r ev er ______ o n ly they Them , c h a rac te ristic . r e sp o n sib ility L aing Other, is and c o n fo rm ity p .8 4 ). Descent of C h arles in to H ell, realizes in catastropha the voyage that the in the di v o r ç a sam e id e a s betw een about the the "I " terrib le a nd the "w e " pr ovok e s . Some s o r t o f a d i v o r c e t h e r e h a s b e e n so m ew h ere a l o n g t h e l o n g p a t h o f t h i s r a c e o f man b e t w e e n the " I " and the "w e ", some s o r t o f a t e r r i b l e f a l l i n g a w a y , a n d I Cwho am n o t I , b u t p a r t o f a w h o le c o m p o sed o f o t h e r human b e i n g s a s t h e y a r e o f meD h o v e r i n g h e r e a s i f b e t w e e n t h e w in g s o f a g r e a t w h i t e b i r d , f e e l a s i f I am s p i n n i n g back C th o u g h it may be fo rw a rd s, who knows?} yes sp in n in g back in to a vortex of terror, lik e a b ir t h i n r e v e r s e , and i t i s tow ards a c a t a s tr o p h e , y e s , t h a t w as w hen t h e m i c r o b e s , t h e l i t t l e b r o t h t h a t i s h u m a n i t y , was k n o c k e d s e n s e l e s s , h i t f o r s i x , knocked out o f t h e ir tr u e u n d e r s t a n d in g , so t h a t e v e r s i n c e most h a v e s a i d I , I , I , I , I , I , I a n d c a n n o t , s a v e f o r a f e w s a y we. Y e s , b u t w hat a w fu l b l o w or k n o c k ? W hat s e n t u s o f f c e n t r e a n d aw ay fr o m t h e s w e e t s a n i t y o f w e? C p. 1 0 3 3 T h is of “ sweet s a n it y of tran sfo rm atio n . sense of group ourselves one is w© n e e d i s not liv e everyone of as if does be sin c e to d is c o v e r so im p e rso n a l, to no o n ly - in my th is “I " is so a b s t r a c t , by a h is v ita l so far c o n scio u s is "o n e of for recover alw ay s of T h e m ". - nobody our liv in g . sane "w e " "t h e y and w hat w ill Our No W hat e x p e rie n c in g W e" the about too u n r e a l. a w a y fr o m w hat and point in d iv id u a lity i s , W ith o u t s a n ity to th in k too f a l s e , existed . w hat i s need We Everyone "U s " "s w e e t we exists. Them. our lo st, w hat e v e r y o n e i n common, replaced is lo n ger n o tic in g Us" L e s s i n g ’ s and L a i n g ’ s s t a r t in g so m ething that a n d s h a r e w hat i s has If w it h o u t "one w e" is act "W e ", sho u ld do, are one w ith u s ". I t i s j u s t p o s s ib l e th a t a fu rth e r tra n sfo rm a tio n is p o ssib le if men can come to e x p e r ie n c e them selv es as "O n e o f U s ". I f , even on t h e b a s i s o f t h e c r a s s e s t s e l f - i n t e r e s t , we c a n r e a l i z e t h a t 11 We a n d T h e y must b e t r a n s c e n d e d I n t h e t o t a l i t y o f t h e human r a c e , i f we i n d e s t r o y i n g them a r e n o t to d e s t r o y us a l l . C T P E , p. 0 8 3 So, way I acc o rd in g see the o r g a n is m . value m a n 's th e sis is person loses p. 2 3 3 . man as 'd i s e a s e '; one existen ce" CTDS, and say s a the of the But is disju n c tio n of c lassifie s h im self and im p lo sio n the p a tie n t, w ith the a one p sy c h o tic r e latio n sh ip a cc o rd in g has w hen reacts The the to w ith fear in d iv id u a l the other w h ic h p etrific atio n . h im s e l f /h e r s e l f b y fear of em p tin ess, p etrifie s b e in g w hen as p a tie n t as 's i g n s ' way we do n o t w ith a We t e n d lo v in g has to and exists the open h e r /h im . because The c o n ju n c tio n p eo p le. th is w ays w orld to nam es be the other. or The w h ic h deal w ith e n g u l f raent, in d iv id u a l understood, of leav e there of tow ards The w ith the of other a CT D S , a norm al L ain g d e a lin g man as see degree uses man the w ith to "M y h is and has co m p ared sees of d iffic u lty the of h ie ro g ly p h ic s h e /s h e an exp ressive in stan ce, betw een as of w ith th e h e a r t . u n d ersta n d in g person and as the w orld: theory b e h av io r to do i t for the of study tested and e x a m p le h is or it- p ro cesses" our as w ith of on Lain g account e m p h a size s and p s y c h i a t r i s t , h e r /h im . the an b e h av io r Laing person in of h e /s h e sc h izo p h re n ic A nd that system an h is a b e in g in to may s e e an o b je c t d isju n c tiv e p sy c h o tic see as such in terp reter. w ith as depends p h e n o m e n o lo g y , h is falls t h a t we t e n d n o t p a tie n t d y n a m ic s in o rg an ism ic p .313. p o ssib ility W it h it "O n e may to s e e the other the and illu strates excitem en t: h e r /h im c o n te n tio n if an see re la tio n sh ip e x iste n c ia l the way every can to to its L ain g catato nic other, I existen ce lim ite d or Laing , other. A c c o r d in g in m a c h in e to en gu lfs im p lo d e s by p eople who fe e lin g beco m e 12 tire so m e or d istu rb in g . c h a rac te ristic s it "p r e v e n t s CTOS, is others. p o ssib ility D iv id e d Self, w ith the the person others o n lo ok er is exist: w ith the at a ll the because the other" p .7 7 ). core false self true a liv e , there self w orld i s fantasy is p erceiv es is is a T h is does, the is d e stru c tiv e that the to the in d iv id u a l c ita d e l. d efen ded, the m a in ta in s real, the the CTDS, the scru tin y : o m n ip o t e n t and p .8 5 ). self "T h e In is the thoughts the are self but can s c h izo p h re n ic dead. in d iv id u a l detached, is an c ritic and the true and co ntrol the paradox is is destroyed" self and e m bo died, fe e lin g g en u in e. are W hen b eco m es d i s e m b o d i e d , fu tile free ap p arently sc h izo id a o b ject self it h e r /h is a ctio n s false, and m ore the body sin c e But sp lit an self- su ffic ien c y as u n r e a l, w orld w ith the to others. is observer, a central and body d ise m b o d ie d e m b o d ie d a n d t h e t r u e s e l f self and is center the ru in s, a self. body self e x p e rie n c e d ashes" of p rim a rily and r e l a t e the fr o m the s e l f , a n e m b o d ie d s e l f , self, W hen t h e i n d i v i d u a l self as L ain g ’ s th em selv es to protect d ise m b o d ie d the the portrays them selv es a nd a s u p p o s e d fr e e d o m , more the cruel p sy c h o tic ’ s by p ro tec tin g can be a person There are advantages safe i960, th e attem pts "H e w it h d r a w s w i t h i n CTDS, in the co n su m e d in are e xp e rie n c e a in n e r, co n tro ller. false of b y o n e ’ s own l o v e " To th e p erso n w it h and d ise m b o d ie d w hat one b e in g p eo p le a b a s e fr o m w h ic h h e / s h e among and w ay p eo p le i n t o b o d y a n d m in d . that of p ub lish ed As a c o n s e q u e n c e o f sc h izo p h re n ic self that “ T o c o n su m e o n e s e l f the p re o c u p a tio n To says p .5 1 ). The is Laing the and m e a n in g le ss. "P h a n t a s y be reduced state, W hat exists can the be is the In so dust w orld destroys under to a is th is b lack 13 sun, the under and in e v il it" eye, CT D S , starts grow, as liv in g in L a i n g rs perm anent betw een and 1967, co n sider Laing ’ s th is is h is of dram a "it as of a label of b r o k e n h e a r t b e m ended. is was regard the to c ritic forces on the struck by the and the p atho lo gical a lie n atio n expressed in the P o litic s of study sc h izo p h re n ia . a p p lie d does e s t a b lis h Them " death p One o f Them " C TP E, "O n e so c ial The on W ith six tie s, "H e d ia g n o se d p u b lica tio n is the v isio n : and more t im e t h e s c h i z o p h r e n i c of human d ile m m a s mad: of w it h e r s b eco m es fa lsity n o n - b e in g . in flu e n c e a d ia g n o sis, labeled e xp e rim e n tal of of system u n re a lity , b e g in n in g new p e r s p e c t i v e s them selv es the person the of the E v ery th in g fa lse- self a n d m o d e r n is t w r i t i n g " . the The c o n d it io n the threat p ro b le m s p rofou nd existen tia list reflects out s c r u t i n y ... W it h t h e p a s s i n g the d e v e lo p m e n t sim ila rity When constant at p oints d e c isiv e In a own a u to n o m o u s , w ell. stud ies Sh o w aite r h is p .1223. more e x t e n s i v e , life of of b y t h o s e who d o n o t as a so c ia l p .1203. liv in g E xp e rie n c e and fact that "W e " d i s t o r t the very let rarely M e a n w h ile , It is hardly s u r p r is in g that the person in h is t e r r o r may s t a n d i n c u r i o u s p o s t u r e s i n a n a t t e m p t to control th e i r r e s o l v a b l y c o n t r a d ic t o r y s o c ia l "f o r c e s " that are c o n t r o llin g h i m ... th at he t r ie s i n s h o r t t o p r o t e c t h i m s e l f fr o m d e s t r u c t i o n b y every m eans that be has, by p ro je c tio n , i n t r o j e c t i o n , s p l i t t i n g , d e n ia l and s o on. CT P E , p. 1 1 7 3 . In fo rces th is w ill break- through. m adness but broken p rev ail L ain g w o r ld sees a c k n o w le d g e s of the those the its of sch izo p h ren ic breakdow n im p o rtan ce danger: of "It we or the is a sk w h ic h those e x p e rie n c e of of p o te n tia lly 14 lib e ra tio n and ren ew al1 d e a t h " CT P E , p .1333. w ay t o a v o i d the d y n a m ic ize group, the of exp e rie n c e person of the en tering th e other in to of c u rta in s the for respo n sible appears p erc ep tio n to external p. 1 4 1 3 . so lve rest w orld, L ain g p erc e iv e the nor and a fo llo w in g the re la tio n that that or w ay or of a true the external fo r person d ig n ifie s the of Our the L ain g v e il as Our hum an in the other in d iv id u a l the turns th is d e sc rib e s reflects "O n e the enters through a lifte d . Seven a sso c ia te d in a cap acity new exist: to the w orld of to and c o n fo r m for “S a n it y to the adapt w ay studies n e c e ssitie s exposes w ay and w h ic h w ill of process hum an we today the CTPE, see and n e ith e r m a n k in d . that b e in g s. w ill the to c o lle c tiv itie s" o r g a n is m ic w ith is cap acity real the p .1393. really a is Laing so m eth ing m o d ific a tio n w orld. q uo tatio n , the realm a w ays on th is the w h ic h and the h e /s h e san ity try in g re g io n s largely on no towards through a door: rise : is n ew s p a c e and prophecy: breakthrough of new proposes of how m y s t ic There A nd m e a n in g fu l. to i n s ig h t of fear very up on p se u d o - d e fin itio n s. and open the process depends part the existen clal b eh av in g E v ery th in g d e fin itio n for of harm o n y. s e v e n h e a v e n s " CT P E , and and up a and in e x p e rie n c e the p seu do - realities of u n ity s o m e t h in g newness open other, broken th e voyage in the He s e e s lack is in to seven s e a l s , search of w ill w orld by b r e a k in g a s h e l l : p artitio n : v e ils, the breakthrough. w hat enslav em en t when i t se e in g fa v o r m aterial a sso c ia tio n is in as h a s t o bo w o r k e d t h r o u g h . e xp e rie n c e o rg an ize s fr a g m e n t e d w e ll B ut i t w ay o f actin g as m o d ifie s It be In is a present throughout L e s s i n g ’ s th r e e n o v e ls: True s a n ity e n ta ils in one w ay or another the 15 d i s s o l ui,i on o f t h e norm al ego, that, f a l s e self s y s t e m c o m p l e t e l y a d j u s t e d t o our a l i e n a t e d s o c i a l reality ; the em ergence o f th e " i n n e r " a rc h ety p a l m e d ia to rs o f d i v i n e pow er, and thro u gh t h i s d e a th a r e b i r t h , and th e eventual r e e s t a b lis h m e n t o f a new k in d o f e g o - fu n c t io n in g , t h e e g o now b e i n g t h e s e r v a n t o f th e d i v i n e , no lo n ger i t s b e t r a y e r . CT P E , p . 14,53. A sso c ia te d c h ildren and to the the if n o th in g p o ssib ility that of L ain g child is p rince, a darkness. fo r else, n ew n ew Who c h ild b e in g , are who CTPE, an spark we t im e has p .303. d e c id e the of lig h t L essing baby It born to prophet, is sim ila rity sp iritu al to new is observe Each the outer p. 3 0 3 . Joseph to a sp iritu al CTPE, presents v isio n that there in to hop eless? sees ch ild ren : a p re c ip ita te d it psychotherapy cu riou s d iv in ity re b irth , Lain g is is and in h u m a n it y . new p o te n tia l of to of a aspect a d isso lu tio n re la tio n sh ip su rv iv a l each re p rie v e " T h e F o u r - G a te d C i t y , the the a sso c ia te s a of in terexp eriential becom e fu n d a m e n t a l "y e t process In Batts cu ltivate as the g e n e r o s i t y a n d h ar m o n y m a n k in d s o u r g e n t l y n e e d s . For the both L a in g nature of psychotherapy, t h e r a p is t in is and L e s s in g h is /h e r fo r co n siders so m eth ing b a s i c the Laing human t h r o u g h t h e The fo r has relatio n sh ip r e d i s c o v e r i n g our p a in fu lly : w ith re latio n fa ith in "W e In betw een p atie n t and in the d ia lo g u e a psychotherapy m ust w o rlds, to we f i r s t becom es share a the and that re m a in th e w ho leness betw een them " CTPE, r e la tio n s h ip hope other. "P s y c h o t h e r a p y personal w h o le i s the the progress tw o p e o p l e t o r e c o v e r psychother apeu ti c start the tra n se x p e rie n ce : o b s t in a t e attem pt o f start re la tio n sh ip in s ta n c e , u n d e rsta n d in g . w hat m akes an i n d i v i d u a l of an b e in g p. 5 3 3 . W hen we d isc o v e r ru in s. re- search. e xp erien c e It of may a 16 re latio n sh ip , but the o n ly honest to sh a re the e x p e r ie n c e of Laing em p h a size s by p sy c h ia try voyage to be our in : own p .1 6 7 ). w here T h is the we no t o f, but a p p a llin g tr y to suppress see that state that the o rie n t is, th is is of a lie n a tio n the or, itse lf in o rig in a even have may b e been taken the e x p e r ie n c e w ith is not natural called source what w ay we of of the need h e alin g n o rm a lity ? L a i n g ’ s words, and end, p .5 6 ). w h ic h voyage it We n e e d o r i e n t a t i o n or a b se n c e " CTPE, w ro ng d i r e c t i o n s when " t h e y " "C a n cured its b e g in n in g , CTPE, we n e e d t o kno w our e x p e rie n c e . p l a c e c a n o n l y b e f o u n d w hen we t a k e a p e r i l o u s but necesary voyage: I n t h is p a r tic u la r type of jo u rn e y , the d ir e c t io n we h a v e t o t a k e i s b ack a n d i n , b e c a u s e i t w as w ay back t h a t w© s t a r t e d t o g o down a n d o u t . T h e y w i l l s a y we a r e r e g r e s s e d a n d w it h d r a w n a n d o u t of c o n t a c t w i t h them . T r u e e n o u g h , we h a v e a l o n g , l o n g way t o go b ack t o c o n t a c t t h e r e a l i t y we h a v e a l l l o n g l o s t c o n t a c t w i t h . And b e c a u s e t h e y a r e h um ane, a n d c o n c e r n e d , a n d e v e n l o v e u s , a n d a r e very f r ig h t e n e d , they w ill t r y to c u re us. They may s u c c e e d . But t h e r e i s s t i l l hope th a t th e y w i l l f a i l . C T P E , p. 1 6 8 ) . Cure and in L essin g ’ s B r ie fin g im p in g e m e n t Lessing m adness in p ro tago nists by f u l l y the is of truth by p sy c h o th e ra p ists s y s te m of establish ed a in n o v a te s a sim ilar in to Notebook, a Descent H ell and m o d ifie s w ay to is e x p e rie n c e in of their shallo w n ess breakdown their and c o n d itio n not a sso c ia te d u po n D u rin g and the p a tie n ts. It of the se c u rity . s a n ity and six ties, h er who c o n t e s t depths, The neglected C ity to and concepts breakthrough. is F o u r - G a te d co nform ity the L ain g *s. The alw ays a re the la b e le d s c h izo p h r e n ic s ex p lo r in g in h e re n t G o lden for c h a rac terizes But The by d ia g n o se s liv in g d iv isio n but both w h ic h transcended 17 in to a new separate structure L ain g re la tio n sh ip s routes to these to and the L essing : that and sec taria n s, C ritic a l The in in q u e s tio n , fu ture. in d iv id u a ls. order Lessing to destru c tio n governors, upon fr o m common p o i n t s the a nd life . th is fo r the voyage in converge the p sy c h ia trists, Pratt, Essays, to b e n e fit of in the fa m ilie s w ay better of to human h u m a n it y , e x p e rie n c e the no d iv id e d a tte n tio n of is effort and a n n ih ila tio n A nnis There the self human are b e in g s m a in ta in e d and by in d iv id u a ls in tro d u c tio n to D o ris says: L ik e th e decade fo ll o w in g the French R e v o lu tio n , t h e s i x t i e s bec a m e a t im e i n w h ic h an i d e a l i s t i c daw n o f t h e W a s h i n g t o n M a rc h w as f o l l o w e d b y t h e J a c o b i n R i o t s o f W a t t s , N e w a r k , a n d D e t r o i t , w h ic h il l u s t r a t e d the in e x o r a b le c o n ju n c tio n o f v io le n c e and chaos w ith in even the most h u m a n istic of refo rm schem es. It was p r e c i s e l y t h i s t i g h t r o p e betw een id e a lism and reality , betw een u to p ia n left- w in g v isio n s and human d e p ra v ity , that Lessing’ s heroes w alked open- eyed, w ryly and c o m p a s s i o n a t e l y c o m m e n tin g u p o n t h e h a v o c . I w o u ld s a y t h a t t h e t i g h t r o p e i s Lessing ’ s p ro tago nists d iv isio n s and im a g e of d e sirab le the w illin g n e s s d ifferen ces. Crystal state of in deed To w h ic h not that stands transparency. a n a p p r o p r i a t e im a g e fo r to I w o u ld fo r The g iv e up in add, how ever, Lessing ’ s purpose of search th is not o n ly to a n a ly z e L a i n g ’ s and L e s s i n g ’ s s i m i l a r i t i e s of a ttitu d e show th a t three to w a r d Lessing n o vels d iv isio n But and sc h izo p h re n ia o r g a n ize s her m oves transcends to a s ta te of befo re s c h izo p h re n ia , as d u rin g and e x p e rie n c e s six tie s w ith fr o m the as the the a n a ly sis voyages of for a is and change but also d iv isio n in sub m ersion I to the in to fo rm . d iv isio n them selv es, of the th e sis transparency exp ressed by a Crystal u n d e rta k in g w e ll the sp ite w ant and to 18 d isc u ss three c ritic a l im p o r t a n t in id ea s. a chapter In H y ste ria as R i g n e y 11 and my i n v e s t i g a t i o n and in M a d n e s s: her The needs m in d , m in d. of h id eo u s © yes’ a lot o b liv io u s of b a rb arism . h er when Mark R ign ey p o ints a d ju stm e n t to c o lle c tiv e m adness. lo v e. To such L ain g ’ s a w o r ld “Is fo r portrays o v er reality q u e stio n the w h ic h , a a very in by a th eir a own of b e in g b e h in d th eir very such of p e c u lia r thoughts, for passage owner b o d ies, its c ity Jean a cu rio us p sy c h o tic e v e r y w h e r e t h e w ay o p p re ssio n . B e in g so the body can o n ly be a r e f l e c t i o n out, The M y t h ", locked p erc eiv in g C o ld rid g e, p e r p e t r a t e d b y h u m a n it y a l l b e in g of "M a r x i s m q u o tin g in person’ s savagery, and M a r x is m a n d m a d n e s s. by apprehended H ill Lain g : In id e a l Hesse, stands in London, its of M adness*: Laing ’ s L e s s i n g 's d e fe c tiv e Cp. 67D c o v e r e d w i t h maps a n d h e a d l i n e s As Quest la in g ia n R. D. exp lo red. chapter other h id e o u sly and archetypal to Barbara V l a s t o s 12, "n o r m a l“ p e o p le any and s e lf- p r o t e c t iv e , so c ie ty ’ s the extrem ely for by L essing D o ris M artha the n o rm a lity re latio n carefully of been C it y ", M a r io n sle e p w a lk in g , ’ their M a r t h a w a lk s so c ie ty is C ity . of in L e s s i n g ’ s v ie w o f c o n sid erin g drugged percep tio n very Faces p erc e iv e s in sid e d r e a m in g are R ig n ey b e g in s Th e c o n d i t i o n is o la te d “D o ris Jerusalem , F o u r - G a te d w ith o u t a rtic le by have " ’ A Rehearsal F o u r - G a te d in teg rates H ill L essing The Two to w h ic h study, P r o p h e c y ", The o p inio n, p sy c h o tic way. the p o ints Barbara fr o m in and of longer sim ila ritie s P ic k e rin g in of S a n ity P sy ch o p o litics L e s s i n g 's a rtic le s in sta n c e , in t h e p h y sic a l h is of room d estru c tio n the p lanet. both not in L essing as and n o rm a lity The but F o u r - G a ted e x p e rie n c e of L ain g lo v e as C ity see a fo r m the of does not p o ssib le ?" the 19 answ er part is of a because are ’ universal sim p ly lo sin g u sing h erself ego. the too of p lug sex a ffa irs? who w hat L ain g and to of as a s t e p tow ards a h ig h e r the lo v e, of self been L essing w o rd s In co m m its p eo p le sex is M artha the su ic id e extends because itse lf. for re c o g n itio n of of of W hat th is our an a v o id s d is s o lu tio n co n trib u tio n the of are fo rce m arriage, self. of w h ic h w h ic h a n im p e r s o n a l the fear our see state is other. protect a o n ly d e p e rso n a liza tio n does has are Sex, each The need dem ands and in to because Sally - Sarah, th is m a rriag e C p. 7 1 3 . other. the in and m ockery’ each p re ssin g is lo ve s im p ly e x a m p le the w orld Sex, p eo p le e v id e n t of ’ no’ . state m a dn e ss of san ity . N o rm a lity , fo r L a in g and L e s s i n g , i s t h e n e g a t iv e and t r u l y in s a n e state because it im p lie s the c lin g in g to u n c erta in certa in tie s and , th e d ep end ence on a r e a l i t y th a t i s , i n f a c t , u n r e a l. To go mad i n a p o s i t i v e s e n s e i s t o g i v e u p a l l c e r t a in t y , a c c o r d in g to L a in g and L e s s i n g , to lo s e th e d i s t i n c t b etw een t h e r e a l and t h e not- real , b e t w e e n t h e s e l f a n d t h e n o t - s e l f . Cp. 7 4 3 R ign ey search says fo r th is s e lf- c o n sc io u s a rehearsal C p. 7 5 3 . self. fu rth er that M a r t h a 's su p e rio r "q u e s t “ s a n ity the A n o th e r w ay m a d n ess of M a r th a u n d e r s t a n d s w h ic h fin d in g that of s e lf of m ilk fr o m a a n im a l T h eir w ay a nd M artha c o n fin em en t, drin k s d rin k s th erefo re, sy m b o lic a lly is a thus by k in d Lynda "is is A com m union: w h ic h id e n tity the th eir v irtu a lly e n lig h te n m e n t" the lo ss C old rid g e. the to to liv e Lynda of lead r e a c h s a n i t y a t t h e t im e s h e d e c i d e s m y s t e r io u s a h y ste ria " w ill true that "t h r o u g h a n d p l a n n e d in d u c e m e n t o f for is w ay to is in the t h e o n l y w ay t o t h e basem ent r itu a l broken fr o m lo sin g the w ith establish es saucer sam e in v estig ate in an saucer. and sense 20 the w alls sin c e of the re g io n s senses the t im e in sid e are m ind. has the those of h y ste ria as has reality the and ’ lig h t Cp. 8 4 3 . L ik e a no fo r w it h exiled need the resurrected th is truth *, w orld, her a lso self h er reborn the p h y sic a l unknow n c o n fin em en t, But the "J u s t u g lin e ss e x p e rie n c e s, beauty her how c a n exp erien ce? h y ste ria deep ly b a se m e n t w ith person. p o w e r fu l h er the escape leaves n ew a n d so she to co n fro n tation and through h u m a n it y , h er is When M a r t h a p erc e iv e d of of come self. one r e la t e M artha There of of through the w orld" seem s new. T h e d a y was f r e s h a n d t h e w o r ld n e w l y p a i n t e d . . . S h e w a n t e d t o c r y b e c a u s e i t was s o b e a u t i f u l . . . She stood g a zin g up, up, until her e y e s s eem ed absorbed in the c r y s t a l l in e substance of the sky w i t h i t s c l o u d s l i k e s n o w b a n k s , s h e s ee m e d t o b e s t re a m in g out thro u gh her ey es i n t o t h e s k i e s . . . C F G C , p. 5 1 9 3 But have the of to some be of the d iffe re n t self C p .8 5 3 . ’ self- hater* w ho le" of has tunes to the So, to and g a in balan ces of a c c o r d in g d iv id e d the fear self one of the also second, w av eleng th s c re a tin g a control and f i n a l l y , o f; "t h a t e v il s o m e tim e s the first co m p rises and fie ld the in the a n n ih ila tes co n fro n tation Lessing , jo y e x p e rie n c e co ntro l; and and of lo sin g or to exp e rie n c e v isit: of self- hater, "R e c o g n itio n the aspects the has w h ic h are, C p .8 5 3 . traveller F irst, w ith sc h izo p h re n ic k no w ledge n ig h tm a r is h character co n fro n tation good" the m e n t io n e d . presence sounds of the w ith the p re re q u isite s for steps tw o beauty to m a k in g re g io n s and that it the another of terror. M artha im p o r t a n t c o n sid ers fo r the the later e xp e rie n c e s adult life . of She c hildho o d sees as ch ild ren very as £1 possessors of d em o lish ed by o p in io n s on the the irre p a rab ly present sen sitiv ity adults. dam aged R ign ey , m aternal lo v e says, then, as Four- Gated C ity . The catastrophe at end new w orld, "o n e sc h izo p h re n ia , lik e that B rie fin g but of ruled a Descent - "h e r h y ste r ia in to r e c o g n ize d , h y ste ria if but she "D o r is P r o p h e c y ", about the structure A c co rd in g early the m ise ry , onus o f and V lasto s attack as w h ic h in dev astation " of lo v e in s u r v iv e who in to can the create darkness p ercep tive, goddesses The a and u n d iv id e d , of L essin g ’ s C p .883. by p r e s e n t in g M artha i n her self fu lly b irth to a her d isc o v e re d M artha s u f f e r e d a in so c ial shake The L essing re je c ts it of stru ggle the in d iv id u a l R. D. L ain g : in tro duces or V lasto s, co llap se the g iv e ch ildren and who s in k and Lessing’ s o ld and because of h er n o n - p o sse ssiv e and w orld. so c ie ty and a rtic le to Lessing to six tie s, communism "W it h w ays to H ell" calm ed, h elped M a r io n of gods sees la ck those w ho le, not h e a l e d " C p .8 8 3 . p o t e n t ia lly better In is not r e m a in the the are and th e n o n p o sse ssiv e ch ildren n o vel m ig h t by v io le n ce for dutyful1y re la tio n sh ip through M artha, the m ig h t Lessin g , of sen sitiv e R ig n e y c o n c lu d e s her age one so lu tio n w h ic h w o r ld fo r is o n ly lik e are Lain g ’ s m other- chi I d presents, the the the w h ic h m e n t io n s "L a in g , in he p ercep tio n R ign ey su b je c t: so c ie ty , C p. 8 7 3 . and a p r o b le m : the G o lden fo r self a in the sho u ld and d isc u ssio n we co n scio u sn ess the unv ia b le . hope im p o r t a n t Notebook, portrays as very P sy ch o p o litics refo rm of p eople? p ublish ed in d isillu sio n m e n t V lasto s p o litical v ia b le existen ce and i t s c ap ac ities understands answer beco m es fo r the to the w ith that: human a g a in the c r e a t i v i t y and 22 moral d e v e l o p m e n t " Cp. 2 4 5 3 . Human re la tio n sh ip s are Notebook. L ac k of b a rrie rs too tro ubleso m e p ro tago nist, w ith in to m adn ess in h erself. The id e a of fo r Vlastos the th e w orld i s a even woman and A nn a i s her M other Sugar C M rs. c o n so la tio n . w ith such re latio n sh ip developed in fo r e ru n n e r of Another d e n ia l of "A n n a The C ity , one s id e w h ic h co n seq uen tly id e a of that vase, of fact others the W u lf and cure is in but descent and Saul in tro d u c e d T h e F o u r - G a te d C i t y sees that the sp litting th is h er the e v o lu tio n e x p e rie n c e and can Anna w ants w ants to one o f pure can stand l i f e to such be person of Not betw een through id e a , sp lit ro les a sp ira tio n s. is is because d iffe re n t a n d A n n a as the Laing sic k re la tio n sh ip it and situ a tio n is No p a t i e n t But the and of in d iv id u a l sugar. betw een dev elo ps th is Anna p ro fe ssio n a l in tr o d u c e s the the by because of energy. b e in g exp lo red . a peasant The and offers a new s t a t e i n sim ilar sees the t h e r a p is t , of that w h ic h i s of Sugar am ount other v isio n life . V lasto s M ark s}, in creates W ulf. and o n ly p r o b le m and d iv id e d h elp s. M other an the p o litical p sy ch o an aly sis shared G o lden H ell. s o c ie ty in d iv id u a l sic k . hope a nd d e e p l y e x p l o r e d in A nna not o n ly w ith re v e la tio n stresses c o m p artm ental i z a t l o n in is a Descent in t o also to The needs block in r e la tio n as other’ s w riter’ s p oints m a dn e ss the in transpose. sig n ifica n c e T h e G o l d e n N o teb o o k reflected a V lasto s w hose and B r ie f in g as fr o m d iffic u lt of to the d i f f i c u l t i e s also Green. u n d ersta n d in g suffers illu strates very a strongly may be the m an" C p .2 4 7 3 . Lessing produce is harm to deny e v il possess t h e madman S i l v a , of that her. in to the the h erself From the dw arf the - the 23 p rin c ip le the of e v il ev il in the in h erself forces sen sitiv e of "J o in sin c e self self sp ite" and "F o r in -, Sau l. part t h e w h o l e " Cp. 2 4 8 5 . of the A nd f o r moves It L essin g fr o m t h e h o r r o r fo r m A nn a is there of to a rec o g n itio n necessary can be to no face of these se p a ra tio n of t h e w o r ld b e c a u s e t h e a t t i t u d e s m alevo len t fo rces that issu e fr o m L ain g : I t has a lw a y s b een r e c o g n is e d t h a t i f you s p l i t B e i n g dow n t h e m i d d l e , i f yo u i n s i s t on g r a b b i n g th is w ith o u t that, if you c lin g to the good w it h o u t t h e b a d , d e n y i n g t h e o n e f o r t h e o t h e r , w hat h a p p e n s i s t h a t t h e d i s s o c i a t e d e v i l i m p u l s e , now e v i l i n a d o u b l e s e n s e , r e t u r n s t o p e r m e a t e and p o s s e s s th e good and turn i t in to itself. C T P E , p. 7 5 5 V lastos co n clu des self- resp ect not fu lly w orld and that balan ce. exp lo re and that the the more is in to is true d rift areas better C p .2 4 9 5 . a p p lie d of m a n 's peo p le house d iffe re n t p eo p le w hen m in d is they is on who separate "T h e m " liv e and p erc eiv e behave th is the one C o ld ridge all a w ho le, by f i t t i n g of so lu tio n o n ly fa ilu re comments e x a m p le novel does for that the fu lly at. is the best the s e lf- a n n ih ila tio n : also an the Anna L e s s i n g s h o w s a w o r ld much m in d c o n c e r n i n g in te n tio n s a allow s o n ly h in ted Mark and that is the p o ssib ility is d e str u c tio n says m adness a b le to s e e th e w orld as C old ridge seen of V lastos by she self- d estru c tio n . exam p le o f a c o n s c io u s Mark that e xp erien c e T h e F o u r - G a te d G i t y t h a t d irec ted d o c u m e n t in g id e a T h is p sy c h ic However, p sy c h o tic apprehends r e a l i t y . It the one the o v er the "B y earth, to d e te rm in e th e fact w ith another" compar t m e n t a l i z a t i on fr o m d iv isio n separately . separateness "U s ". in to But and Even lay ers how are m a n ifest the w here p eo p le it to 24 others? The trem endous iro n y d escrib ed by L essin g and L a i n g a n d o t h e r c o n t e m p o r a r y w r i t e r s on m a d n e s s i s that, w h ile so c ial b e h a v io r is based on the p rin c ip le of co m p a r tm e n ta lizin g , splittin g , c e r t a i n p e o p l e a r e f o r c i b l y s e i z e d a n d l o c k e d up in iso latio n fr o m s o c ie ty for ad m ittin g the c o n d itio n in t h e m s e l v e s . Cp. 2 4 9 3 - T h is s u b je c t doctor is b eco m es p ow erful v e r y - se rio u s -in w h^le who w a n t s t o b e f r a n k sho ck r e lie v e truth and u l t i m a t e l y , stro ngly both and exp e rie n c e re la tio n The in Notebook, e x p e rie n c e , resem blance M artha to in c o n c lu s iv e descents. as But to as is they of have faces her is can pattern: the depths e v il, and of the - both human the Sugar’s in and Lynda’ s bears the in a sp iritu al and p rin c ip le s or also a m e th o d s. w orld and the t h e basem ent. d ifficu lt, at M a r t h a 's the for exp e rie n c e , M artha’ s v iew of stay the and presents M other Saul’ s, p o ssib le : "D r u g s m e a n in g f u l "o n ly r e s u lt L y n d a 's p atien t p sych o an alytic p sy c h ic th e r a p e u tic tem porary a one. and a su rv iv a l VI a s t o s the id ea l M artha’ s trip s a fo r typ ical Cp. 2 5 1 3 . Anna’ s For The C it y and B r i e f i n g to d u rin g s h a rin g the of C p .2 5 0 3 . hand, basic liv e co n sid ers Ma.rtha self- hater, Saul C i t y . -T h e — resp o n sib ility "T h e L a i n g 's w ith L a i n g 's of in im ic al deadlo ck" along h elp less. re sp o n sib ility cure" and F o u r - G a te d a r e even w orse: doctor Cp. 2 5 0 3 . sp a c e where t h i s V Ia sto s nephew. the on t h e o t h e r d e c id e s p h y sica l and its e lf Anna in te lle c tu a l is the c o n clu sio n s p o ssib le betw een Anna’ s debate, and of is and G o lden as g e n e ric " re latio n sh ip p a tie n t the consequences p a tie n t suggest, personal the The c o m p le x a n d Pau l’ s p sy c h ic te rrify in g depths house, of a ll also M a r k 's ascents forces of h u m a n it y . and the At 25 the t im e of her descent, m a in tain in g Lynda Lynda and hears talk in g about "s h e was by s o c ie ty a these w ants "It to to children the new the have of w o u ld w orld to is not at be w o rk ed w orld r e s t s C p .2 5 3 3 . in V lastos the M artha l i v e s sweetness" part of th is of does C p .2 5 2 3 . new new the t im e w orld. and p sy c h ic She clo ud s. e x p e rie n c e of h u m a n it y and not fo rget that M artha, h elp to g iv e p sy c h ic The C ity not is "D e s p it e the B r ie fin g to start fo r a to M artha M any of the Descent and th is and But th in g s of the hum an r a c e " p erfect t h e work of e v o lu tio n th e s u rv iv a l the present about Lynda en e m ie s. p ac ifie d . im p lic a tio n s nature of has the The elem en t e x p e rie n c e , the q u e stio n of dream s an sustenance fig h t beauty race. has of g e n e ratio n d iv in e that to still natural isla n d strength the n o v el, The who em body an the co n sid ers At breed B ut carefully w ith c h ild r e n had C old ridge sile n c e : C p .2 5 2 3 . trees new is treatm ents b e in g a - sky, the upon. that t h is feels W it h o u t end Itse lf" M artha’ s in sho ck she - the o l d " C p .2523. on t h e v e r y d u b i o u s Mark r e c o g n ize s have the and of d i v i n i t y hope in respected. she in g e n e ra tio n p eo p le. b e in g beauty ascent V lasto s th eir of sin c e kept of of c o n fin e m e n t and, and about n e c e ssity in be o p p o rtu n ity basem ent, in h a b ita n ts it. truth an fo r a d m ir e s of to natural of and in p eo p le Lynda w ith source the she h o sp ita ls, a lso the beauty are breed the the catastrophe, d iv in e many of fro m t h e a s h e s o f M artha cannot has the and peo p le doctors, and fro m a c o n d itio n many have movement "u n e a r t h y that w ith u nited th is understands p o ten tia lité s, M a r th a up be A fter an w hat v o ic e s by reveals risin g drugged te rrifie d comes is that her p u n ish e d liste n e d a sees frie n d ly M artha in M artha c ity but now. in to H ell "a n £6 e xp a n sio n form . A name o f of the s trik in g n o vels" aspect Jesse W a tk in s, of E x p e r ie n c e . V lasto s, about e x p e rie n c e , the tow ards But u ltim a te r e m a in s of it. the it the su rv iv a l B rie fin g . of For o rd in a ry reality h u m a n it y , by the fa c t im p o rtan t fo r the for a the b e in g s. the the The w ith t im e gods she w ith w h ile "in B ut are and as not Lain g be h in d that B rie fin g - the q u e stio n in her to fic tio n goddesses lig h t seen ju d g e of and by the it h u m a n it y in is by done B r ie fin g p ersp ec tiv e . g o d Merk Ury as p ro v id e The sin caused that: W atk in s the trip s, d iffe re n tly CHum ans ] have not yet evol ved u n d e rsta n d in g o f t h e ir in d iv id u a l s e lv e s p a r t s o f a w h o l e , f i r s t o f a l l h u m a n it y , s p e c ie s , l e t a lo n e a c h ie v in g a co n sciou s o f h u m a n it y a s p a r t o f N a t u r e , p l a n t s , b ird s, in sec ts, re p tile s, all these m a k in g a s m a ll chord in the C o sm ic Cp. 1 2 05 Jesse the P o litic s r e c o g n ize s n o vels strategy and is The react q u e stio n L essing a d iffe re n t in stan c e , that last h u m a n i t y " Cp. 2 5 3 D . d iffe re n t first in L essin g W a t k in s note other both its the c o in c id e n c e s of in t h e nam e o f records the tw o to w ith of undergo p sy c h o tic u ltim a te the w orld o f uses nonhum an of as that d iffe re n t c o in c id en c e L aing agreem ent sin c e also W atk in s, and J e s s e sees but the C harles the im p u lse , sam e Lessing of is of w hose c a s e how ever, e v id e n c e Cp. 2 5 3 3 that Both C h a r le s su ffic ie n t "T h e is t h e m a in c h a r a c t e r , sculp to r w ell. tw o gods. and Jesse’s C h a r l e s 's the C harles v isio n e ssen tia l W atk in s a lso id e n tifica tio n it appears q u e stio n have is an i nto an as m erely t h e i r own kno w ledge a n im als, together Harm ony. id e n tifica tio n "v ic a r io u s " C p .254} t o be l i t e r a l " C p .2 5 4 D . that arises is that w h ic h 27 concerns G o lden the d iv in ity N o tebo o k co n clu des flig h t In by slau gh tering V lasto s, is but th is the courage, he on the ch ildren or is the The B riefin g and p oint human of of e v il, three p sy c h ic itself' the women and a c c e p ts of th is d iv isiv e b rie fe d fo r task. agony the F all, and the the e v il s id e to sim u ltan eo u s is a very p lan et, and of attends Jesse, be w rites h im in flu e n c e s that o p inio n a on B aines fu lly conseq uently, C harles* in h ab its, of Jesse so c ia l and self, returns in to not in both hand, "la c k s the h is is return and c lin g s the to a reader goddess e d u c a tio n of im p r e s s iv e and C harles T h is to T h e w ay C h a r l e s B aines, about true to h is human w orlds letters the id e a l J e s s e 's is h ell- earth C harles m oments. But he s c h izo p h re n ic , Rosem ary reco g n izes. is the Jesse, rec o g n izin g p eo p le. that C harles norm al Through lectures letter of on t h e o t h e r C lassic s. h is order existen ce c o n tra d ic to ry . p ro fesso r d iv in e descent U n like im a g in a tio n , m e a n in g " C p .2 5 6 3 . also acceptance "t h e co n fro n ts part d iffic u lt "H a v in g been t r u e t o h i s it w ith com pares w i t h n ew k n o w l e d g e o f ritu a ls the is strange p o te n tia litie s And, n o vels i d e n t i t y a t t h e most t e r r i f y i n g p o sitiv e V lasto s* a he fr o m C harles h is explore it s k now s tw o V lastos C ity He ack n o w led ges S in c e proves re c o g n ize is first blo o d y freed C p .2 5 53 . liv e s F o u r - G a ted C harles the substances. real life . and its terrors but h is m ista k e, a cc o rd in g to 0 t h e d e s i r e t o r e m a in i n t e g r a t e d t o t h e C r y s t a l w a ll "t e m p o r a r ily h is the of c a t t le . h u m a n it y ego" The B rie fin g sy m b o lize d and in C harles* t h e r e t u r n t o a w o r ld l i t C p .2553. of and that is in d e n ie s the the reason fo r g o d on t h e p l a n e t . is not the sam e: h u m a n it y a n d t h e e a r t h fr o m h is voyage co n form ity , as C harles not to does, a but s im p le to a £8 greater aw areness p s y c h ic jo u rn e y s of th e in n e r by J e s s o , sense that these they come back. reality the w o rld " C p .2 5 7 3 . The A n n a a n d M a r t h a c a n bo co m p ared i n tho in d iv id u a ls To expand C harles of the the a cq u ir e d w o r ld kn o w ledge does not w hen beco m e a re v e la tio n . In "M a r x i s m M y t h "; Jean and M adness: P ic k e r in g p o ints L e s s i n g ’ s v iew o f s a lv a t io n M arxism . fo u r of The s h i f t s fr o m n o vels of the m adness" in the la s t The to i deal both "t h e C h ild re n of persecutes in c o lle c tiv e , is, represents together in it im p lie s counterpart and M artha’ s exp e rie n c e s proceed order to reality sho w s through the left“ se rie s F o u r —G a t e d fact, is in that to to in the "t h e C ity , first p olitics are b u ilt up the u n d erly in g im a g e t h a t Jerusalem , archetypal her, personal an i d e a l the and the way: state the w ith an M a r t h a 's the dark CFGC, the M artha the lev el the of the ages and r aces lev el self, the in the outer has sid e, p .1513. voyage in to of the life , as arriv e d . the goal shadow new room s t o of path. of is c ity the The of com pares the chaos t h e human b e i n g The w ell. It "a P ic k e r in g that d irec tio n e v o lu tio n ary A rm agedd on on of o f A rm ag ed d o n a n d c o n c l u d e s fo llo w "o n that But J e r u s a le m canno t be u n d ersto o d w ith o u t b ea stlin ess" in e v ita b ly goal w here a l l beauty; w ho leness - Arm ageddon, poverty and c o n f l i c t and harm o n y i n d iv id u a t io n " C p .2 1 3 . to m a d n ess a n d s a l v a t i o n series a cc o rd in g a p o litical it in d iv id u a l, its the In L e s s i n g 's betw een of of D o r is c o n flic t V io len c e The of absence p o litics no vel. in Faces ci ty. Jerusalem liv e v ie w s the through p r o g r e s s iv e l y and o r g a n ic a l l y . structures Two shadow has c ity in shadow s becom e nuclear h olo caust o n ly after a c o n flic t. 29 death an d e s t r u c t i o n on t h e i s l a n d The in of w h ic h the w h ic h d iv is io n s of the self; C p .2 5 D . w h ic h "e n la rg e in te g r a tio n strange "I" fu rth er in to she the m a tu r e ch ildren ness, the her, the opens of born c ity , also room s expresses spaces w ith of h er too, of u n ity own m ind also v isio n not fo r m ind to of jo u rn ey enough, of in teg ratio n " and the in to m erely as own b e i n g , states the - "H e r The p lace her P ic k e rin g ’ s ness a in to C p. 2 6 } M a r x is m : of freq u en t is p a ra d o x ic a lly recesses very c ity . life , d iffic u lty clearly "w e " is the in te g ra tio n . new and to for h erself" but to g reater contact and in to and m a dn ess h id d e n m akes house connected to the search understand leads also "d iv id e d house betw een greater and in te rio r jo u rn ey the we rooms the co m p lex ity , M artha’ s Here both fo r im a g e its But h u m a n it y . that its is and p o in t s stands and house relates L e s s i n g ’ s n o vels house, Jerusa lem becom e a p o s s i b i l i t y . im a g e Q u a te rn ity , that to she pushes she d isc o v e rs common to all h u m a n i t y " Cp. 2 6 5 . By a s s o c ia t i n g an e v o lu tio n a ry A c ity of path harm ony e x p e rie n c e keep sh a d o w . is b u ilt the It in d e stru c tio n in open to ashes and three in d iv id u a l’ s the su rv iv a l the the of c ity , v isio n of P ic k e rin g m adn ess p o ssib ility u n d e rsta n d in g to P i c k e r in g , as of that A rm ageddon" when w e ll and the the as room s can and and of of the o n ly that p o litics to M a r x is m . nature "J e r u s a l e m Cp. 28D p o in ts; be both m a d n ess c o n n e c tio n . a rtic le s co n fro n tation of a tran sfo rm atio n , are p arts o f an o r g a n ic The w ith Lessing ’ s becom es ev id e n t, the house h u m a n it y . p oint w ith We to the can the self also im p o r t a n c e and w it h n o tic e the that of the quest the of three 30 c r itic s the stress the in d iv id u a l and horror the at c o n n e c tio n the the sig h t streets, that Lessing c o lle c tiv e . R ig n ey of h id e o u s and her change in voyage the p o s s i b i l i t y and n o n - p o ssessiv e m a dn e ss as s u b je c t is "p r o p h e t s " story of r e v e la tio n lin k e d are the P ic k e rin g , o n ly the p lan et P ic k e rin g studies. these stress w o r ld . isla n d and H. of She the to Anna’ s Lynda’ s voyage B rie fin g , h is and of change the im a g e self, of own that th is respect im p o r t a n c e that fr o m of the the m a d n e s s. "o n e ’ s th is and in . in proves r o o m s ", the voyage city She of Lessin g’ s re latio n sh ip s uses and the on her on h u m a n it y . return in common, aspects who re c o g n ize s a that en ables The w h ic h to have the that the of th eir presence destroys know su rv iv a l supranorm al of m e e t in g equal W a t k in s * and and for my lo v e them selv es ch ildren- adu lts of usefu l n o n p o s se ss iv e c h ild re n ’ s the co n scio u sn ess successful to V lastos been M artha’ s learned The r e l a t io n Sau l’s R ign ey , have u n d e rsta n d in g how ever, to based n eg lec tin g they p o ints those in . analy zes w ith o u t R ign ey p o in ts and c h i l d r e n . M a r t h a 's a c i t y o f h arm o n y a n d p e a c e . o n ly p o s s ib le because of adults argues r e la tio n sh ip s M a r x is m d iffe re n t Barbara critic as the e m p h a size s c o n fro n tin g s u rv iv a l soon of The of able u nite to en visio n attitu de th eir the as to in . cure turn, kn o w ledge B e s id e s an her a tt e m p t in d iv id u a l as to after V lasto s and p o te n tia lly on successful voyage feelin g s. betw een a n d h a l f - c o m p l e t e d human b e i n g s in c o m p le te n e ss reveals the establish es on a b ilitie s and the is d i g n i t y among c a n b e co m p ared to M artha’ s in stitu tio n a lize d p o ssib ility of power and in d isc o v e rin g true id e n tity . In V lasto s’ a rtic le , the relevan t p oint for my stud ies is 31 the a n a ly sis e m p h a s iz e s G o lden of the a w o r ld N o te bo o k p o te n tia lity d u r in g the return fu ll and w ith of the the voyage in most a relevant im p o r t a n t c a m e llia shock and in n e r treatm ent. because not t im e m e n tio n fact, th is C h arles’ to w orld of has is over in is be In a n n ih ila tio n let in . a There sh o w s F o u r- G a ted p a in fu l p o ssib ility is C ity . no aspects fa ilu re : the h is it not h im is of case, reach lik e t im e no but fa il V lasto s does In u n d ersta n d in g of In h is sleepy the w in d about w hen t h e p r o t a g o n i s t s e x p e rie n c e to the of separate e xp e rie n c e w ith state holo caust both strong p erp e tra tin g the truth. the self face ideal and the happens and their The exp e rie n c e s c o n tra rie s the power The do n o t A rm agedd o n . a t o m ic effo rts a c h ie v e m e n t c am e llia. know ledge and p. 2452). for strong to the The outer in stitu tio n a lize d the a the the clear C BDH , id e n tity . o n ly of su b m ittin g c am e llia the of om m its t h e becom es the to true betw een v isio n befo re process" h elp ful that a fter w ay The o n ly kept o f t h e im p u ls e at r e a c h in g for t h e w o r ld c a n b e a c h i e v e d the and V lasto s w h o le C harles’ p sy ch o terap ists P ic k e r in g th is a c c o m p lis h m e n t . im p o rtan ce not the total becom es very the of "r o o m s " a n d the The contrasts However, reach th is in a c c o r d i n g t o my p o i n t te n d rils to em p h a size s also does and realized v isio n t im e s realizing in flu e n c e Jean th is allow ed can needs. and outer several Lessing but allow , V lasto s the return co n trastive C h a r l e s 's and "T im in g v isio n in The after C ity , is voyages. e v e r y t h i n g a n d e v e r y o n e gro w . not that personal takes try fa ilu re fo r Through lettin g rem em ber, that two n o v e l s in n er p sy c h ic F o u r - G a te d B rie fin g . reason te n d rils The a nd w o r t h y a n a l y s i s . the im p o r t a n c e o f the p o te n tia litie s d iv in ity B r i e f i n g and t h e other v ie w , fro m city voyage in in The The 32 G o l d e n N o te bo o k of th is a in te n tio n is C ity e x a m in e of the in the C i t y , ’ and in t o earn H ell, a s human b e i n g s the their characters no vels. the of M artha selves a n ew of the fa ce t of d e v e lo p m e n t o f W atk in s’ and in of Lynda in a c o s m ic to is to in in The Descent T h e work each of co nseq uently, a presented Crystal W ulf, one through u n d e rsta n d in g w ill the a I p o ssib ilitie s harm o n y . b rin g my in . Anna fo r and u n d ersta n d in g ; th eir w ay s B rie fin g in voyage C o ld ridge, lim its voyage H ell, dev elo p th e ir the the Notebook, in to p ro ta g o nists th eir e x p e rie n c e a sc e n sio n t h e pow er G o lden Descent and W a tk in s, and of a The chapters Quest know ledge of d iv isio n fo llo w in g C harles o rg a n iza tio n T h is C harles fo r and as p a r t i c i p a n t s d iv id e d d iffe re n t e x a m in a tio n m e a n in g The G o ld en N o tebo o k, d e m o n stra tin g w orks. B rie fin g three F o u r- G a ted on and w ell, t o show th e way L e s s i n g 's u nd ersta n d in g in as L e s s i n g 's ch ro n o lo g ic a l Foui— G a t e d w ill B rie fin g * e xp e rie n c e in Through The and i n the cu lm in a te in the last n o vel. B rie fin g . The presence extrem ely im p o r t a n t n e c e ssitie s and of h elp to th e voyage in squares and sin c e r e —g e n e r a t i n g r e - s h a p in g c ir c le s of the are o rg a n ize d . thoughts about the to other human b e i n g s in the L essing dev elo ps the of structure illu stra te circ le s the id e a of w ay w hat of no vels w ith them b e in g r e la tio n sh ip s. e xp e rie n c e s As a c o n s e q u e n c e , im p o r t a n c e three leav in g our and to th e u n iv e r s e but human Squares d u rin g and is the m eans and after t h e y s t i m u l a t e our m in d s also open not o n ly to o u r s e lv e s . N o te s *D o r is L e s s i n g , 19863. A ll The fu rth er 2D o r i s L e s s i n g , 19863. A ll further A ll fu rth er 4E l a i n e S h o w a l t e r , 19833, ^ R o n a ld D. C lty C Lo n d o n : to t h is in in to H el1 references to th is the text. G rafton work a p p e a r a Descent Books, in Books, the te x t. CLondon: work G rafton appear in the Pantheon Books, York: Random House, appear in p. 2 2 3 . L aing , The A ll further 7R o n a ld D. L aing , B all a n t in e a pp ear in R o n a ld D. D iv id e d referen ces The Books, 1 9 6 8 3 . the text. Laing , Self to t h is P o litic s A ll CNew work of E x p e r ie n c e furth er CNew referen ces So b re Loucos e Sãos CSSo the text. to P au lo : York: th is work B rasilie n se , p. 1 0 7 . PS h o w a l t e r , p .228. Pratt C M a d is o n : a n d L. S . R ign ey , CLondon: references Dem bo, U n iv e rsity of 14B a r b a r a H i l l Novel work a p p e a r T h e F e m a le M a la d y CNew Y o rk: 19693. *°A n n is G rafto n p. 7 . 5Showal te r , 19823, referen ces fo r CLondon: to t h is F o u r - G a ted B rie fin g 19863. N o teb o o k referen ces The D o r is L e s s i n g , Books, text. G olden to L essing : W isc o n sin P r e s s , M adness and S e xu al U n iv e rsity of th is D o ris work W is c o n s in appear in C ritic a l 19743, pp. 7- 8. P o litic s Press, in th e F em in ist 19803. M a r io n V I a s t o s , " D o r i s L e s s i n g a n d R. D. and P r o p h e c y " , P M LA , No. 2 C M a r c h , 1 9 7 6 3 . Two 26, 19803. appear referen ces fu rth er L ain g : P sy ch o p o litics A ll f u r t h e r r e f e r e n c e s t o t h i s work a p p e a r i n t h e t e x t . 3 J e a n P i c k e r i n g , "M a r x i s m a n d M adness: The Mac L e s s i n g 's M y t h , "M o d e r n F i c t i o n S t u d i e s , fu rth er A ll the text. 12 A ll Studies to th is work Faces of D o ris No. 1 C S p rin g in the te xt. CHAPTER 2 THE G OLDEN NOTEBOOK bl ack d a r k , i t i s s o dark i t i s dark th e re i s a k in d o f L essing , Th e f i r s t w o rds o f above illu s tra te w h ile se a rc h in g w ritten truth the for w ord h a s of facts. force that W ulf’ s answ ers a ls o Sugar in dream s, false, prevents w rite. Anna, The to l i g h t /i n n e r of Anna’ s fr o m and r u n n in g , T h e G o l d e n N o te b o o k and in h er Saul and t h e co m pany o f words. She - the th eir a th e ra p ist, stim u late s the h er change hope, som eone, corresponds fr o m to d a r k /c h a o s a n d F r e e Women i s towards w orld. M rs. a A nn a better lo o k s M arks, or for M other c re a tiv ity , the a g ain . consequence, A nna s t a r t s facing th e a w a re n e ss o f fr a g m e n ta tio n and d i s s o l u t i o n of s u rv iv a l, of h erself le a rn in g w ith o u t and o f n e g le c tin g a on the o u tsid e As work m a in ly and to fe e l neglected a nd in sid e openness the callin g to lig h t faces through w h ic h i s fr o m movement of w riter, has g o l d e n n o te b o o k Green’ s them selv es a the epigrap h e xp ressio n o b lite ra tin g , T h e c h a n g e fr o m d a r k n e s s and fo rm lessn ess u n d ersta n d in g to that quoted in A nn a o p p o s e s d a r k n e s s t o l i g h t movement o f Anna w ay here T h e G o l d e n N o te b o o k n o te b o o k d iffic u ltie s a been from d e s p a i r i n g . the the th e b lack darkness the d ev elo p in g i n s i d e p o s s ib ilitie s the w h irlp o o l. 33 L ik e L a i n g ’ s The D iv id e d S e l f , N o te b o o k presents e g o tism and e m p h a s is of v io le n c e to the p eo p le i n v a d e her "t h e human self and w orld. the the - in te g r ity The - concepts the and g iv e s stru ggles out the w ith p e r s o n a l it i e s what i s p re c io u s start, has then, and that se e n by e le m e n t that w ith self w ith concepts d is c u ss e d novel points human b e i n g revising are She The G o lden separateness, su ffe rin g s most a six tie s that of the in t e g r it y of the of 1961, Lessin g ’ s d e a lin g that n e c e ssitie s in reality b ein g s. to threaten core" and sho w p ain fu l "s c h iz o p h r e n ic ". own a n d t h a t the m adn ess among as ch a ra c te rize s that a a human b e i n g h a s i n as w ith 1962 d iv id e d seen d iffic u ltie s Lessing in p ublish ed the p u b lica tio n s lik e san ity and develo ped d u rin g the decade. A nna W u lf ex p e r ie n c e s p a rtic ip a tio n in daughter, been trie d the has A nn a has d iv id ed co lo ur of a of two dedicated woman. the w ay her h er w riting c re a tiv ity se c tio n s. relevan t at fo u r life a in th is w ith hotel in is area related F ro n tie rs. and group M o n ey , A frica of fiv e War, that a is each o f her the The a ctiv e has best- seller. w e ll a But W ulf has d iffe re n t Anna notebook first and for in to se c tio n e lu c id ate s id e a s w h ic h as th e so u rces the frie n d s, the and guaranteed by in sid e the Source about years h av in g part o n ly c o m m u n ist b rin g s an life . in v o lv e d as but has c u rio u s. She su b d iv id e s a n a ly sis. a fo r se c u rity is of to She c o n s t a n t l y b u s y w i t h her notebooks, - the b u sin e ss Source to r e latio n sh ip s t a y at n o teb o o k is lo v er F ro n tie rs lo o k in g in to to a nd c o n c e r n i n g a s p e c i f i c w ith m any w ays. Her f i n a n c i a l n o vel of e x p e rie n c e The b lack deals in t h e Com munist P a r t y , to be a f r e e p ro fits life Anna’ s how the is their p lot of her n o vel. C y n ic ism , d e s c r ip tio n of p re o c u p a tio n and the of life critic th eir w ith the in tu itio n b eh av io r. T h is in of of Ann and its that after sterile reflect bar, are present Anna’ s com m unism , correspondence and who betw een stud ied Anna’ s nature have at roots tow ards and, in hum an e xp erien c e F ro n tie r s . A frican its reason a fo r but also cruelty n o vel, As Notebook, th e novel she has w ritten sham e her and block c r e a tiv ity : Anna realizes e lic its in several a s ta rtin g an in c a p a c it y to a v o id n i h i l i s m life . in p h y s ic a l u nity w ritin g For v eld human t e r m s , fo r the th is g r o u p 's and their the w ith in c ap a citie s and the "t h e u n c o n s c io u s, m a n k in d re p e titio n F ro n tie rs cy n ic ism has in human r e l a t i o n s h i p s A nn a’ s re rea d in g o f n o u rish e s own m i n d l e s s psy ch o an aly sis, a a id e a lism th e v e ld s ta n d s for i n d i f f e r e n c e s " 1. report co lo ur S in g le to n , nature in flic ts and and d is t u r b s L essin g ’ s fic t io n , w orld liv e s and c o r r e s p o n d e n c e beco m es e v i d e n t i n A frica M ary n o sta lg ia The and G o lden fe e lin g s that T h e n o v e l i s 'a b o u t * a c o l o u r b ar p ro b le m . I s a i d n o t h i n g i n i t t h a t w a s n ’ t t r u e . B ut t h e e m o t io n i t cam e out of was s o m e t h in g frig h te n in g , the u nh ealth y , fev erish , illic it excitem en t of w a rtim e , a l y i n g n o s t a l g i a , a lo n g in g fo r l i c e n c e , f o r f r e e d o m , f o r t h e J u n g l e , fo r f o r m l e s s n e s s . I t i s s o c l e a r t o me t h a t I c a n ’ t r e a d t h a t n o v e l now w i t h o u t f e e l i n g a s h a m e d , a s i f I w er e i n a s t r e e t n a k e d . C p. 8 2 3 The red div isio n s in sid e p artic ip ate d secretary. of the notebook, the may t h i n g s as we'll its turn, B ritish in te n siv e ly But C. P. on as not Com m unist o n ly in te n s ify among presents its as the a reality Party. member sp lits mem bers. the but in the Anna also of has as a structure In co heren ces, the 37 d isc o v e ry of g e n e ra tio n s cr im e s , c o n trib u te the consequent The The M ichael. s u ic id e c olour in is are itse lf" n o te b o o k a v ital bar A n n a 's a w riter im p o rtan t and w ith fo r m who, fo r lik e her "t h e reveals a The p ro ta g o n ist in on t h e surface one of d e sp a ir. "T h e growth of th is In Anna w rites realizes re q u ir e s is lin k e d life . m adness. who E lla m an’ s th is w ay , to life the is about in s id e re - d e fin itio n of notebook the the of an a m an, commit a future of order not in of the w riter ^who b e in g - d iv isio n concepts of order, the o n ly the a is to in tim a tio n reveals war surfaces also human but w ith undercurrent in te n tio n but and who i s fa n ta sie s s a n ity deep death w ith the apparent h erself the the the and w ith p ulse w o rrie d of Anna deals E l l a ’ s n o vel, that y ello w for E lla ’ s case, u nkno w n not Shadow frig h te n in g im p o ssible suggests fic tio n d iv isio n the and M i c h a e l 's in v o lv e d w hereas the The is w riter life of younger Party and F ro n tie rs u gly o rg an ized C p .1 8 1 ) In W h ile an surface in the stand Anna, life . secret novel Paul, has b ea u tifu l w ith Anna’ s - the and th e m es. Shadow and u n d e rc u rre n ts. and m is t a k e s d isillu sio n E lla q u e stio n s Cp. 1 6 2 ) , su ic id e" of presents fic tio n al p ro tag o nists, Ella fe e lin g s, to r e p e titio n leave. y ello w re la tio n sh ip T h ird . the w h ic h sa n ity and m a d n e s s. The w o r ld blu e around r e c o g n ize s n o te b o o k Anna that th eir e m o t io n about d a ily events language is not a nd many lim it is d ia ry that w ay she the p eo p le and but good a liv e do not based s o m e tim e s enough to on the reacts w ant th is show shows to reality tow ard feel, proves reality , it. but p a in - g iv in g . in She she She in ste a d w rites in e ffic ie n t. a nd the fin d s Her an 38 elem ent of s te rility u ntruthfulness in newspaper life . cu ttin g s. o r g a n iza tio n . total In lo ts But The fo u r frag ility In of to h er w o rd s p laces the w riting notebook d ia ry is is at least, a s we s e e in lin k e d taken corresponds are, and fo r m le s s n e s s w h ic h an a o v er by elem en t of defence th is to a g a in st im a g e : S h e u s e d a n o l d - f a s h i o n e d m u s ic s t o o l fo r th is o c c u p a t i o n , a n d s h e now s p u n i t h i g h , alm o st as h i g h a s t h e t a b l e i t s e l f , a n d s a t l o o k i n g dow n a t t h e f o u r n o t e b o o k s a s i f s h e w er e a g e n e r a l o n t h e t o p o f a m o u n t a i n , w a t c h i n g h e r a r m ie s d e p l o y i n t h e v a l l e y b e lo w . Cp. 7 2 3 B ut in A nna is q u e stio n e d com partm ents, In the novel presented each of w riter W ulf in the but is to d e fe n d h e r s e l f Free fiv e fo u r also h er Women, se c tio n s co lo ured the q u estio n ed c o nfro nts because Tommy, d e te rm in a tio n the b a rrier a fter the su b d iv id e notebooks, the h er w ith w ritten w h ic h nam e o f by of Anna the W ulf p ro tago n ist. son of her In of to liv e notebooks. notebooks and p re se n ta tio n is not Free frie n d o n ly of the Women, Anna M o lly, who w ith t h e te n d e n c y t o c o m p artm e n talize : A nd yo u a r e n ’ t e v e n h o n e s t e n o u g h t o l e t y o u r s e l f b e w hat y o u a r e - e v e r y t h i n g ’ s d i v i d e d o f f a n d s p l i t up. . . . Y o u t a k e c a r e t o d i v i d e y o u r s e l f up i n t o c o m p a r tm e n ts . If th in gs are a chao s, then t h a t ’ s w hat t h e y a r e . I d o n ’ t thin k there’s a p a t t e r n a n y w h e r e . You a r e j u s t m a k in g p a t t e r n s o u t o f c o w a r d i c e . C p. 2 7 3 3 Tommy Women the trie s to co w a rd ic e is m e n t io n e d w riter commit is too leads by Anna h im su ic id e p ain fu l to after to in a notebooks d iffic u lt th is h im the d ia lo g u e and he but in so l f - q u e sti o n w ith can’t Anna. Free - he Anna’ s understand the 39 reasons fo r not f a c in g A lo n g w ith notebooks, she Anna’ s is them selv es v isio n s and em ergence of - has not is - the w ell. to p ain , The fo llo w s A n n a h as i n "t h e and separated the the fr o m im p o rtan ce a nd and d e ta ile d study the the th is and the d ir e c t io n the p oint, of fa c in g the v io le n c e the in of th is process. fe e lin g are, u n d e rsta n d in g o f and real can of notebooks as o f th e attem pt and in life that of shadows d iffic u ltie s e xp e rie n c e s in v o lv e d on w orld n ig h t m a r e s s h o w in g lies a n n ih ila tio n d iffe re n t lim itatio n of of the her c o n flic ts c o n flic t dream s, the - Laing ’ s of a slo w chaos Anna’ s w riting o v er c o m e of in te n tio n in te g r a tin g at to a p e rso n a litie s chaos. the is of etc. w ith self" a lie n in sid e dream s, - and n ig h tm are s, p re c io u s They there h erself co n fro n tation that e x p e rie n c e v io le n ce has n e c e ssitie s, that be dream s, Anna’ s that preserved the not e x p e r ie n c e . her in h erself. dream s of But d iffe re n t n ig h tm are s, these "c o r e " fo u r B o th d ream s a n d n o t e b o o k s a r e m a n i f e s t a t i o n s fa ce that k now s be of in in sid e fo r m s : p erso n alities. stim u la tin g She to can she d iv isio n s a n n ih ila te dream s in what for d iv isio n s d iffe re n t many of fo rm lessn ess. w ith In a lie n the c a p a c ity self in fra g m e n ta tio n shadows. of m a n ife sta tio n exterio r in v o lv ed express d isru p tio n chaos. that and the surrounds She has to learn n ecessarily , steps what a n i n d i v i d u a l is. /~ "A n en o rm o us w eb o f b e a u tifu l T h e s c e n e o f A n n a ’ s d ream i n A nna keeps m a n k in d U n io n . and d ista n c e w h o se B lack flo w ing most is in to fr o m the each But, other stretched t h e r e d notebook em bro id e re d im p r e s siv e A frica. fabric co lo ur is sud d en ly , and w h ile out" C p .2 9 7 3 . e m p h a s iz e s t h e map. p ic tu res red. the th is Red co lo urs and is the start process m yths of S o v iet m e ltin g takes p lace "t h e w orld C p .2 9 83 . But occurs. An w orld i s a b eco m es elated" seen It in my sorrow . is the house and has room s to its the by the the and, turn B efo re h a p p in e ss that also the the not one o f b e in g " house a cc o rd in g fo rm er in the the her aspect. appears style but her in fra g m e n ta tio n and the red I that of u n ific a tio n are have not of Anna n ev e r becom es a reason sa tisfa c tio n . y ello w is notebook. much m ore E lla has The of im a g e trie s in th is d r e am f o r the is co n flic t, the the she P au l’ s trap th is it the first looked lik e of down th is, all a w hole l i f e , then, d o in g in than c h a rac te ristic reflectin g She Anna’ s p ain fu l been "a n d dream , after A recurrent in co lo ur presents: them a w h o l e , In Her jo y fu l "a p ro bable fr o m d i s i n t e g r a t i n g . to up, p ro b a b ly th e y were a ll C p .2 2 6 3 . C p. 2 9 8 3 . m e ltin g jo y , the the d iv is io n s c h a ra c te ristic s co m m u n ity and has d is s o lv e d . how ever, the of chaos m eans sle e p in g , o n ly but in to exp lo sio n "S o m e b o d y p u l l e d presented start co lo ur" exists w oke aw areness chaos The scenery , not "I b e in g co lo urs occurs else an d isso lv e d " consequently, contrary, d ream been human th is all that v o ic e : im p o r t a n t : co lo urs and tho u gh t t h a t d isso lv in g , fo r the dream . fragm ents, prevent is when C p .2 9 8 3 , realizes the street w ho le As E l l a ’ s. fr a g m e n ta tio n in o n ly second first house a sm a ll it g litte rin g in te n se N o th in g have ended and th e f a b r i c Anna’ s v o ic e and dream , exp lo sio n On so Anna’ s p o litical life " The d iv isio n s in is b e a u tifu ll h a p p in e ss. d ream T h is h a p p in e s s. im m ense. for the reflects c o u n trie s. becom e fa b ric C p .2 9 8 3 . notebook, of one T h e n A nn a h e a r s the towards all p ulses e x p lo sio n of r e ac tio n feels the a chaos. thread w hole, E lla to the o rg a n ize to the room r e t u r n s n o vel, t im e . absence trie s a of the The w alls reason order and 41 o b e d ie n c e she to a prevent d ire c tio n s the knows is w ith The a is is the Anna d e liv e r e d They order g iv in g to fo r c e it o v er w orld. the through is b its to im a g e was w ith of a the A nna is large sum s shuts it they the large d ia m o n d s" "I is of the casket happens I central surp rised out by in the cro co dile. is c o n su ltin g also roo m , up" the attem pt v isio n The of place "a sh rin e fr o m thought down Anna feels, saw how T h is to I fr a g m e n t s the they green w as I saw the it cheeks and then, is had the cheated of the dream . and by the d e liv e ry of the co m p ared a r t ", it c h e a tin g in te r p r e t the sm all w hen its all represented when a In t o h er and W hen to and, sorrow where sig n ifica n t. box. n o tic e w as be cries. flesh em eralds, the the not I C p. 2 5 3 3 . w ill open A nna of "It I statues. w h ic h and d r e am do ro lled w hen the notebook. and su ffe rin g W hat alou d w oke of snout. tears all that blu e not p ie c e s or in A n n a 's up t h e c a s k e t w ith jad e, C p .2 S 3 3 . la u g h e d and of do b u sin e ssm e n sard o n ic in casket d e lig h te d : co uld C p .2 2 9 3 . and p ictu res money and box off room s" first they of the are w in k in g a c o m p o site But s id e dead Anna o pen s a p iec es. the But fragm en ts is in of w ill h a p p in e ss. by c a rrie s peo p le. fro zen v isio n Sugar’s of fo r sid e it fu ll for b u s in e s s m e n b u s in e s s m e n about and of It a a reason come made in to su p e rio rity : sm a ll cro co dile, a liv e, turned is h er A nn a open cro co dile strength gallery, fu ll and frag m e n ta tio n . d e c id e her too of fly in g the them t o l o o k , surp rise, and betw een w rites group effort c o n flic t p ro ta g o nist a by an the h a p p in e ss art "o n ly d isin te g ra tin g , a w h ile , She an to start for and casket. scene of that not, S u ffe rin g command: house because A n n a - E lla c o n flic t central th is to art M other g allery g iv e s the same im p ressio n p erfe c tio n , because of t h e b u s i n e s s m e n ’ s C p s y c h o t h e r a p i s t s * 73 k n o w in g w as see in more: "a a w ry lo o k snout of casket are h er that im a g e sm all, on rather my f a c e m a lic io u s of d e liv e re d h er and app ro p riate. self. the The on the the fragm ents to be understand v io len ce that and to both v is io n s to of A ltho u gh is hand, w ho le. d e stru c tio n w o r ld . sho u ld art" But are as be m atched they are the in still and th is the Anna’ s in the on the crystal are be not too dead. It lacks tim e , c a n 't The r e a l i t y p re c io u sn ess e x p e r ie n c e there sho u ld in co m p lete. at of "c r o c o d ile " them parts of h e r s e lf. as the they c o m p le t e O n ly and g rin a n d her w here Anna, w e ll in as the pleasure woman, understand too is b lin d n e ss. cro co dile p lace of a cc o m p lish ed the sp iky fragm ents the sacred, not w in d o w dry, green who is re c o g n ize d A n n a 's other d ia m o n d s h a v e I However, self shop p ale, little "s h r in e cro co dile, a w h ic h p eo p le The A n n a 's in o f my d r e a m " C p . 2 5 4 3 . parts the of the So, can com m erce of untouched. Anna the of of of the of the self sam e c a s k e t , she is and still u n a b l e t o s e e them t o g e t h e r . Anna’ s w ith of n ig h ts are dream s i n v o l v i n g terror in v a d e "n ig h t m a r e frig h te n in g C p. 4 6 3 3 . about of w o o de n In vase d e stru c tiv e co n flic t, in tim a c y . d e stru c tio n " all A fter n ig h m a r e a b o u t C p. 4632). her p o p u lated the d r e a m in g the one of fr o m and about of dream s, R u s s ia . a n a rc h ic . p a in The The n ig h tm are s and Anna it types of tw ice, m a lic e vase other has a t im e for of - jo y the p erso n a lity the that "t h e nam es takes A lon g p rin c ip le s Sugar cy cles Anna p rin c ip le w ell. c e rta in name or as M other the sp ite, the jo y , tells is d iffe re n t p rin c ip le the by the most dream s" it in "t h e sp ite" fo r m of w h ic h p rin c ip le a is takes shape in an te rrifie d and o ld because s n ig g e r e d , represented p rin c ip le that I When o n ly mean my s e l f or realizes "I m y th , is it is in in sid e in me her sm ile d to and in the under of a g ain , self were a frie n d or of th in to too or w hen in the itse lf the horror th e elem en t human b e i n g , can when h old hers, because i f house c o n flic t, happens a n y th in g case, the in a the alw ay s or he in th is fo r t ", e xp erien c e have w hat w hen In more g ig g le d a fra id stress, my and jo y the d re am even m a lic e , is "h o l d is a g ain , " r o o m s ". another also , man jo y was f r i g h t e n e d and loose not Anna Anna w alls does and p ow erful, T h e most t e r r i f y i n g d estru ctio n it has d ream ed the old m a lice, Anna I that of and "w a lls ", "A n d becom es more i n t e n s e : now o u t s i d e v ital h er fe el A nna "T h is Cpp. 463-42). of of d w a rf- lik e human: c o n flic t, C p .4 6 4 ). is sp ite, tire d , co uld p rin c ip le to . pure h erself. danger" is ugly, in v o lv es p artic u la rly when He im p u lse" facing is he w as was d e s tr u c tiv e b e sid e s man. then easily it be is can evoked" C p. 4 6 5 ) . Another w orld in betw een th e s t o r y o f to better o n ly parts reflectio ns u n d e rsta n d in g and there w orld of fin d of of w hat the shadows The Shadow o f She i s w orld we her self she is. reason for She the - P a u l /M ic h e l . w riter of are. itse lf E lla portrays and th e f i c t i o n w hat T h ird . a life the expresses the also life it: of s t o r y w ith E l l a /A n n a man. her understand c o n tin u a tio n , Anna’ s has o c c u p ie d but Anna, also to b asically a ffair w ith the of in Anna g iv e s an shadows sources up in Shadows subm erge b u ild in g sim ila ritie s she w rites shadows. For has the are are fo r th is her Anna’ s th is w ith in order a not the w orld self. The fic tio n a l s t o r y a nam e: P au l, them e o f a m arried su ic id e and 44 w ith the grow th b u ild in g the is up o f c h a n g in g of P au l’ s the of w ife is own She th is w hat she w o u ld shadow, im a g e s o be Slo w ly to to a and she cannot c lin g in g , so the C p .2133. je a lo u sy casu al, these th is is shadow, m eans is, and tem p o r a r ily C p .2 133. in the now of shadow part of on stands of a is in w a itin g has a n e g a t iv e a sp e c t. h im self the w in g s return" When E l l a is life, him . . . of The is the h is analy zes the th is w oven other herself" P au l’ s rake, free, existen ce of p ercep tio n of in “So a b a n ish ed , C p .2 1 3 3 . her E lla’s at fo r the E lla, been "t h is A nd s h e i s of re aliza tio n : has not o w n? O n e o f self- h a tin g w ith that understands m in d . the h erself*' h erself of the does w hy im a g e E lla a fo r m s woman i s p ro tectio n co n sciou s to in re aliza tio n together But E l l a 's th is shadows, illu strates in im a g in e d the u n e n v io u s, understand w ith o u t safety w h ic h Ella d e sc rip tio n fib re to shadow F in ally , in sid e fr o m h er him . the u njealo u s, th is "E v e r y The c o m in g rake unused, to and realize, sort by E l l a , that re la tio n sh ip , then, h is h eartless" shadow s a w orld through P au l’ s aside, as ego. h a p p in e s s im a g in e l i v i n g to first, C p .2 1 23 . w ife sh a d o w : com es th ird , In P au l’ s w ith that: P au l’s not" correspondence in to E l l a ’ s fa n ta sie s lik e b eg ins is The At calm , be h e r s e l f , p ro tago nist. alter is that dependence w i t h h im , woman, E lla’s E lla its changes serene, she h er she "a fr o m corresponds of how ever, ev e ry th in g co uld it the life . of resources of lik e d iffe re n t answ ers p o in t, fu ll p ic tu re . Then, of has E lla’s The p rocess as knows, death story in k in d h erself. u n d e m a n d in g woman, m atch shadow a the E lla’s the th ird . P au l’ s C p .2123. u n til in w ife , s h a d o w b ecom es im a g e it death P a u l’ s w ife , about of w hat it ser io u s pushed p erso n ality , P au l’ s shadow, h er own s h e know s 45 it is p o sitiv e seren ity . hand, is the to However, w h ic h , acc o m p lish aspects self the and is to Laing ’ s the p o la r it y better of calm ness, n eg ativ e. w orld a c c o rd in g of a the So, Lessing ’ s tw o s i d e s to her p o sitiv e . p o la rity come due of is id e a that and is alw ay s it r e a l/g o o d in teg ratio n P au l’ s, shadows E lla, u njea lo u sy on the c o m p le x is u n d e rsta n d in g to A gain necessary - fa ls e /e v il other due present. and in of to a we fa ce order to the human the study self. T h is of aspect E lla’s w riting fic tio n is of starts. The in but she gets gets more i n t e r e s t i n g a n a ly sis the im a g e i w riting . s id e in h er to fo rm , there th is room , is h er So, fo r a of see E lla’s the the story to w a itin g , there is a of is E lla’s a v ital search need l o o k s i n t o her book that I of "d r y o n ly dry sentences. t h e im a g e s s h a p i n g t h e m s e l v e s another to shadows e xe m p lifie d in to h e rse lf fo r of fo r for in sid e c la rity , w e ll". fo r for and lig h t: lo o k s w ater, be She w ritten . change in im a g e s "E lla , w a it in g for her, for in E l l a ’ s develo pm ent C p. 4 5 2 3 . p o ssib ility She The need fo r itse lf" to d iffic u ltie s o u tlines p riv a te p oo l, shape w hen alone th e shadows knows It the as is that clear w riting of story: I ’ ve got to accep t th e p a t t e r n s o f se lf- k n o w le d g e w h ic h mean u n h a p p i n e s s or a t l e a s t a d r y n e s s . B u t I c a n t w i s t i t i n t o v i c t o r y . A man a n d a woman yes. B o th at the end of their tether. Both c r a c k i n g up b e c a u s e o f a d e l i b e r a t e a t t e m p t t o t r a n s c e n d t h e i r own l i m i t s . A nd o u t o f c h a o s , a new k i n d o f s t r e n g t h . Cp. 4 5 4 3 B e sid e s im a g e o f the f o c u s i n g on E l l a ’ s / A n n a ’ s d i f f i c u l t i e s dry w ell, of "a cracked o p e n in g in to to w rite , the earth the that was a l l d u s t " Cp. 3 9 8 3 illu strates The process o f d isso lv in g , her Anna’ s own, parts shows of a process approaches: good and second a fu rth er bad, yellow e xp e rie n c in g . fr o m abundant, be. she w ill have w ith him : her; and flesh . Ella w atch in g and apart: W e ll , sex: "C A t th is p o in t them th in kin g was all flesh, mar vel 1 i n g. 3 " even Ella one. 3 " The in s id e becam e Cp. 3 2 0 3 . the Ella and d isin te g ra te s, w ho le, h ealth y "g o o d , w ise and held. and person: room , th in kin g, Anna. But that happy" serene Anna is "I able see moment of w ritin g becom e separated: the about “Ella to E lla, I h old s C p .4373. w om an" w aitin g . is she p oint, E lla, A nna flo ats away to and sto od to sex that E lla as slo w ly Ella. th in kin g to is detaches fr o m me of id e a "A s Ella of Ella m a in ta in "t h e a a is, the fo rtress" detached b ig of and em p ty course, C p .4 4 7 3 . h erself. and after e xp erien c e about not" g iv e of to Who Ella both the so she w o u ld h elp an h er see it person, tries w a lk in g w hat co n tin ue She p erc e iv e for has the warm , be c o m es h e r s e l f : fast in sid e Anna, and the across sid e , one also is D u ring one h erself, Ella of fr o m E l l a , text the body parentheses w hen t h e s h a d o w o f t h e t h i r d cracks a that’s to in understands C p. 3 2 0 3 . stan d in g forces, stan d in g then, detached h e r s e lf the of Ella are m a d n e ss sp lit "H e w ell Cp. 3 2 0 3 . d ista n c e separate Very w e ll!3 " of be as was sense as him the up in to E sp e c ia lly M a itla n d , "C E lla th is d isru p tio n saw p oint, ir o n ic a lly : can sh o w s Cy she self, u niv erse. A nna s u b s t a n c e fr o m voyage the e n du ring . and c r a c k in g the of the w ith sid e , co n tin ues co m p ose Jar as u n d e rsta n d in g notebook, exuberant The in te n sifie s sex CAt t h i s one state. B efo re e x p e rie n c e room that A nn a i s o f b e c o m in g a d i f f e r e n t fragile that the d iv is io n s At Or: be c o m es the both so m eo n e 47 else" A nna C p .4473. beco m es c e rta in th in g stay way to all How w eig h in g the is in " I ’m can is the g o in g n e u ro tic develo ped. the act is m in e " A nna d isso lv in g , because proves th is h old s so lu tio n and in of that th is of the m ec h a n is m : in c r e a s in g ly w hat p re c io u s is "I co ld, In to a a o n ly C p .3 0 83 . th is a better fr a g m e n t e d c o o rd in ato r process w ritin g ? fo r en c o u ra g in g of Is s im ilar and of by facts M other that unanswered of the Sugar, by h ealth, can the estab lish is "s a v e " q u estio n s, B efore Sugar Sugar’ s u n d e rsta n d in g w orld? n o d d in g s. d isso lv in g , M o th er t r u t h o f m ental A nn a a n d M other mom ent, a Lessing d e fin e s she of of h elp ch a rac terized them e th e ra p ist, that r e m a in and the Anna. iro n ic al voyage in to a r e la tio n sh ip to prevent A nna’ s d is in t e g r a t io n . th is hew o r d e r A nn a the sile n c e s, helped, because self, in m a d n e ss w i t h S a u l , about away a n n ih ila tio n the in s t it u t io n a l iz e d The treatm ent At total psychotherapy b alan ce, tries "I C p .4 6 3 3 , brain in d iv id u a l represen tin g flo ating says little h elp fu l fragm ented she chaos, real fa ith a of life . does treatm ent that h er th is h er lo sin g sm ile s, When b a lan c in g in process in te llig e n c e " Laing ’ s central of of prevents above c ritic al, th is a fra id . k in d that In it of true w ord The the The the in a of L a i n g 's in d iv id u a l, by re la tio n sh ip the broken p ie c e s v ie w i n w ay o b v io u s c o n d itio n essence of co n sider C o n sid erin g L a i n g ’ s id e a s i t a s im ilar n e u ro tic make to in t e r e x p e r im e n t !a l tr y the u n ific a t io n presents m eans im p o rtan t frag m en ta tio n . establish ed. to is of n e u ro sis p oint b e in g is b e in g w ith a so that a is e v id e n t The G o ld en Notebook. w h ic h is that sim ilar to perhaps h ig h ly co n flic t. Anna L a i n g ’ s: the c o n scio u s But id e a s the w ord and essence of liv in g now, c o n flic t" p recio u s in fu lly , Cp. 4 5 6 3 . belo ngs co n flic t relevan ce reached of the or not them selv es" w here A nna i s h erself in her Mother are long, statues. ro o m " in is th is room at and p eo p le th is W it h lo o k Anna at a lm o s t Yet lik e A nn a "n o t h in g art is alw ays in te rp re t them n a m in g o f A n n a ’ s dream s m yths a r e s a f e r d ream s in her that than r e a lit y : in w ith own p lace she, at th is m e a n in g w here of tw o of It and is corresponds crude, It p lace. is The w a lls there a are d ed ica ted fr o m w ith th is a n y th in g room raw , that a The th e r a p is t m yths and is bored w ay. But it is h er in . u n fin ish ed , Sugar’ s takes opposed d iffe re n t sittin g d iffe re n t M other d im in ish e s or lim itin g everyw here. g allery . o f what Anna s h o u ld be l i k e to a lso I ’ ve t o r e m a in s a n e . m a sterp iec es d is c u ss io n Anna’ s is the been by the p sy c h o lo g ic al try in g flo w ers my l i f e b e in g p e r s o n w hen s h e l i m i t s ba sically in off real co n sciou s C p p .2 3 9 3 . tries It of - he o ff, room we a r e has an has is the It is of fact t o b lo c k the norm al room "In Anna’ s of is ex p lo rin g say b lo c k in g them s h e i s c o n su ltin g "I by r e - d e fin itio n — my l i f e relates co n tin u es on, so m ething m e a n in g that: te n ta tiv e " usu ally real through rep ro du ctio ns p lace: the goes Lessin g , realising L essing , a w hat and Anna sane q u ie te n e d . w ith Cp. 2 3 9 3 . p leasurable stay them selv es. dark, It lo o k to because t h e y ’ ve chosen notebooks. there. covered by t h e e x a m p le o f co n fro n t of sp lit. I P eo p le Sugar’ s "s u b s ta n c e s " tall, all proposes s an ity . fo rces b e in g o ff Laing d isc u ssio n C p .4 5 6 3 . treatm ent, both lim itin g stage that. fo r the of t h e y a r e w h o le a t stage b lo c k in g So, to and not w hen A nn a exactly th is s u ffe rin g . D ream s a n d 49 But when I t r y t o u s e an e x p e r i e n c e , t h e w o lv e s coma down o u t o f t h e f o r e s t , or when t h e c a s t l e g a t e s o p e n . . . When I ’ m f l y i n g l i k e I c a r u s - d u r i n g t h e s e d r e a m s , n o m a tter w hat f r i g h t e n i n g m a t e r i a l t h e y i n c o r p o r a t e , I c o u l d c r y w i t h h a p p i n e s s . And I know why - i t ’ s because all p ain , and the k i l l i n g and th e v io le n c e i s s a f e l y h e ld in the s t o r y a n d i t c a n ’ t h u r t me. C p . 4 3 7 3 What Anna needs is and leav e the nam e, " ’ The next A nn a W ulf w alk s of p riests. can I them selves. the new, w ho le and the it m eans they the e x p e rie n c e m e a n in g elem ental a nd sho u ld fear I the of w ith fe e lin g s T h is w ith Anna c re ativ e so terrib ly ?’ " re q u ire d you’ ll proves fo r feel to by the be the myth a nd reaffirm s: fo rests and present m yself, Anna her life and " ’ so m e tim e s cracked has i t s Anna, T h is and go o d t h e y ’ re another so m eth ing ’ ” w e ll as good of aw areness of Anna’ s e m o t io n s fig u re e v il, is an then why Sugar answ ers " ’ Perhaps as to aspects exp lo re M other s itu atio n : trie s sid e th is Anna’ s across, h o rrify in g " ’ If as peo p le, Sugar to C p .4 643. her value. w ants as up m eet for M other is Sugar open valu es opens I the to that v itality true. she they choose to are Anna’ s on of su rp risin g q u e stio n s: force, room: by frig h te n in g - M other sacred safety and them selv es jo y - in - s p i t e . truly . it they fa m ily off, t h e d r y w ell the the h er w alk fo r d im e n s io n : dream s of not Sugar’ s Later w ant ba sic k eeping that leav e a n y fo r m I Freem an, M other castles is fact therapy w isd o m deeper C p .4643. are a n a ly sin g p rin c ip le s d r e am the H e r e we s e e capture as th is me the it Anna Cp. 4 5 7 3 . you, So, n o n - cy clic fo r I them i n to ld C p .4583. to W h ile w ith w ith I ’ ve seem s Cp. 4 6 0 3 . and But existen ce sp lit, the cope a nd be in that alo n e’ " w o lv e s to b e h in d ; surely, fo rw a rd the Freem an" fr e e d o m W u lf stage i s , " I ’ m tire d A nna the as w e ll as is much you bad’ " more so d e v elo p ed a fte r the c o n fro n ta tio n w ith her d iv id e d self: It is p o ssib le that in order to keep love, f e e l i n g , ten d ern ess a l i v e , i t w ill be n e c e s s a r y to f e e l t h e s e e m o t io n s a m b i g u o u s l y , e v e n f o r w h a t i s f a l s e a n d d e b a s e d , or f o r w hat i s s t i l l a n i d e a , a shadow i n the w i l l e d im a g in a t io n o n l y . .. or if w hat we f e e l is p ain , then we m ust feel it, a ck n o w led g in g that the a ltern ative is death. B etter a n y th in g th an th e sh re w d , th e c a l c u l a t e d , t h e n o n - c o m m ita l, t h e r e f u s a l o f g i v i n g f o r f e a r o f t h e c o n s e q u e n c e s . . . C p. 5 2 9 5 The voyage in t o c o m p r e h e n s io n fact of m a tu re chaos, and terror the shell, the in sp a tial L e s s i n g 's have "D o r is and d ir e c t s aspects the last h is not of of settin g studied and M elan cho ly " negates v estiges necessary step of the self and fo r Only are v ita l w ith the the life . v o y a g e m eans t h a t the search w orld. the f l a t the the M irces in but "fo u r s " d ire c tio n s, en clo sed o p inio n negate quest. it is the the in The p ain , fo r their e x p lo ratio n fo u r no im p o s s ib le and also som e of Karl in A n a to m y of R. New space as b e in g it "T h e baffle in sig n ifies e m p h a size s w o rk : m a g ic to of reflected in F red erick The agree. is fo u l; the fin a l neg ative ’ fours’ in d ic a te C p. 292). The sacred the exp a n sio n , fo ur" of u n ific a tio n . t h e room "w h o s e a i r Lessing ’ s is of w alls, S ix ties: g e o m etric , Karl of en clo su re, q u a te rn ity , vary. of co m p letion , There of E lia d e ’ s id e a t h e p r o f a n e c i t y " 2. the of aspect e xp erien c e aspect to a v isio n in fin ite , the c o n clu sio n s Lessing id e a s w ith i t s fo r c o n fig u ra tio n w orks a rtic le is the a nature do not a v o id of uses p erfect c ritic s all frag m e n ta ry v isio n Lessing Several space therefo re, and b e a u ty can a c r e a t i v e f o r c e be born. as the is, and c o n s e q u e n t ly , total D o r is h is self that the c h a rac ters d iv isio n , of the fact in te n sify W ith th is that the e x p lo r a tio n does not fact, of of d im in ish J u n g 's is or g h im se lf" . in n er In represents of the is q u a te rn ity w h o len ess darkness w h ic h , house as w ell: " 'T h i s v e rsio n by of the the the c irc le , is at in the one h er "L e s s in g w ith a rticle out frequently w h ic h , they an m in im al M yth" p o in t s house, c ity : the yet L e s s i n g 's of upon represents not q u a te rn ity : touches as P ic k e rin g of m a tt e r are as Jung related archetype of by the Cp. 2 5 3 . the f l a t d a rk shape is and is a w alls the D ic tio n a r y "J u n g square, who by fo u r As s it u a t io n !), Jean life lik e Sau l’ s, the T h e Two F a c e s so w ere t h e the way, in te rio r is d iscu ssio n : that of sam e the s e l f " "It th is man the w h ic h , w ith e x p e rie n c e . state another of to The atm osphere o f darkness: the a the im p o rtan ce im p lie s, a space lim ite d Cs y m b o lizin g "M a r x i s m a n d M a d n e s s : the of co m m en tin g number p lu ralist valu e relevant q u e s tio n , c o m p o site the p lace in comment on q u a t e r n i t y a s p r e s e n t e d i n S y m b o ls th is chaos takes in of h elp is c h a r a c t e r !z e d th is c o ld “ C p .5 893. to ch a rac te rize an e x t r a o r d i n a r y w orld’ " C p .5 8 93 . The need becom e clearer w hen flat, of A nn a r o o m ', darkness trie s to and so dark, These the by i t s it are sense he s a id , the aspect in tro d u c e aspect of is as A n n a 's of lig h t w o rds hugeness, ’ i t 's of if lik e a vastness in the e n v ir onm ent: B u t w hen I t u r n e d on t h e l i g h t i n my b i g ro o m , I k n e w t h i s w as w r o n g , l i g h t was f o r e i g n t o i t , s o I let th e dark come b a c k , co n tro lled by the tw o p a r a f f i n h e a t e r s a n d t h e g l o w fr o m t h e g a s f i r e . I l a y dow n, a n d t h o u g h t o f t h e l i t t l e e a r t h , h a l f o f it in c o ld d a rk , s w i n g i n g i n im m ense s p a c e s o f d a r k n e s s C p. 5 8 9 3 . 52 A nn a n e e d s d a r k n e s s natural not course. o n ly lo st She w ith obscure s id e that vastness o b ject dark lo ng in a w ith in sid e a its e lf once a dark v ib ra te Cp. 5 5 7 3 . change the of and h e a v in g . w alls I b e d ... space. stood of flo o r but a Here a to an its e xp erien c e also new life : w ith the a to I and other in that then and of lo v in g the tw o w alls a nim als" to the struggles and was b u lg in g flo at the kn ew w alls W e’ re a cc o rd in g new I but tran sfo rm even space, I life , mad. can lik e sh ip s m a ll o a s is bed in w ard s, stood S a u l ’ s and A n n a ’ s s u b sta n c e s . of the b u ild in g s, we o b s e r v e an a fr o m both them selv es me lik e very flat is each bulge moment The p ercep tio n betw een be battleg ro und, around s o m e t im e s a is " W e 'r e flat is iso late d also C p. 5 6 2 3 . the It flat flo at, can it ’s ruined "T h e flat the seem ed For in teresting . transfo rm and flo o r above C p .5 7 8 3 . The we c i r c l e "T h e if seem s sud den tly d isc o v e rie s: in to to fo llo w in c lu d e planet n ig h t: m adness" atm osphere The o b lig ed steps the also "S o m e t im e s hate, W alls it energy then of sea. m ore: w ith and C p. 5 6 3 3 . cocoon a ffection , is of it . is on that her of the f l a t v ib ra n t lik e know s the s e lf- c o n ta in e d " as the p lanet The shape o f flo ating away lik e floors out w alls had to and gone, get to to be se e m Th ey m o d ify a c c o r d in g and to th eir e x p e rie n c e . The p resen ce is v ital T h e ir other, for the the in terexp eriential o n l y w ay f o r tw o human b e i n g s , successful exp e rie n c e s for of are voyage p o ssib le freedom of re la tio n sh ip , a successful in to because b e in g voyage, A nn a W u lf and Saul m adn ess a nd out of in v a d e d the by c h a ra c te rize d is openness each by Green, of for other. L ain g as it. each T h is the w hat W u l f a n d G r e e n a c h i e v e . Lessing of w orks w ith The G o lden notebook the voyage Notebook. It in to appears a n d b eco m es s t r o n g e r d iffe re n t aspects stresses, in of each of the the in in the the in three y ello w by such a "fr a g m e n t s " and i n the g o ld e n one. voyage th e m , self the Lessing portrays d iv isio n im p o rtan ce o f the blu e and total also fu sio n of tw o human b e i n g s . The fo urth y e l 1 ow when com pared structure in to short a ste risk n o vels on are v e rsio n s of STORY" its left be herself "A b e c o m in g She ill, slo w ly understands the of reality * deeper sense of reality c o n clu de, A SH O R T another S T O R Y ": p sy c h o lo g ic a l sid e "S h e ch am eleo n , a dozen d i f f e r e n t or h arm o n y a ste risk s in w ith yello w T h is notebook e xp la in e d in in the a It d iffe re n t is that the A nna has q uo tatio n s w ith she has a In "* and "* 10" 4 because p eo p le" A SHORT She fin d s had in her hers, she is man not there of so that in to it, Cp. 5 2 0 3 . one "A has A nd in man to **18 who is a course of a she can p erso n alitie s, eith e r in o p p o sitio n to, reproduce the C p .5 2 3 3 . s in c e blu e A nn a y e llo w and b lu e b ack n o te b o o k notebook: w ill to the has "T h e a day a the r e fe rrin g go lden response and e x a m p le s man. n ev e r is and an n in eteen are In illn ess ’ n o rm al* in d iv id e d sto ries A n n a ’ s and S a u l ’ s r e l a t i o n s h i p h im " the that lo v e th is gone; than the b lu e notebook sim u lta n e o u sly . in C p. 5 1 7 3 . changes be h a l f in that ones. exp e rie n c e . symptom s has of and fo llo w in g wom an, ill" ’ sense cu rio u s Sau l’ s w ith w h o se is The and is yello w by E a c h o n e h a s a num ber co up le understands man c h a r a c te r ize d other It h ealth y is n o vels. a story. Anna’ s we f i n d : the s id e . about th eir w ill to and sh o rt alw ays fo r what life . sto ries notebook were w r it t e n a ste risk s m e a n in g fact is, of the w h ic h the is real 54 exp e rie n c e c a n 't a sterisk s, lik e symbol all, of but reader most in at moments another th is able is to the steps of the of as i n that h er does body of and the th is too of not dense opens The note about up a at w h ile a n ew Saul and its g iv e up: Anna is p rin c ip le the and of b e in g w ith has other war of A nn a is d iso rg a n ize d to th e voyage. of terror feelin g . "S o m e t h i n g still and and c o n f l i c t has to be C p .5 6 3 3 . In fig h t However, in n er A nn a i s p e o p l e 's m in d s . She liv es fu lly. So, w ill it be part of the next in . com es to fe e lin g s liv e creature creature own the sp lit peo p le w hen fearfu l frig h te n in g strange b e in g s for of the en tering e x p e rie n c e m a k in g l o v e w i t h S a u l : in of Or A n y th in g among hum an co n fro n tation terror p ain provoke W hen The ro w better. square. is a moments h a p p e n when i n t e g r a t i o n the p re p a r a tio n fo r a ll liv e s. gro w s of most d is c o v e ry , h er of hostess starts be Anna dream s fa ils the the voyage fu rth er n atu rally. a that som e p a t t e r n h a s t o b e w o r k e d t h r o u g h . . . " D iv isio n s Saul’ s b e in g she co n sciou s the liv in g Anna moments danger but leav e also at that notebook. w hen be c o m es process d iv isio n s, or d isc o rd an c e s T h e most p a i n f u l d isin te g ra tio n p lay ed o u t, m ig h t e xp erien c e and blu e and hum an im p l y perhaps, exp e rie n c e s fo u rth e n t e r e d b y them . fo rces b itte rly , n o vel, The c ra c k in g s p a in fu l of th in k, too th in . jo y - in - d e s tru c tio n co n sciou s c irc le Cp. 6 0 9 3 . the in te n sifie d w ith a w ords" The j a r r i n g s , the I o ld - fa sh io n e d k in d , the lang uage i s are d e sc rib e d . an som e not be law s, is who born "o f its in in both h er flat, com es to Anna e m o t io n a l own in at she the a nd becom es in h ab it and sexual lo g ic " Anna’ s moment her, she responses, C p. 5 4 3 3 . But the creature week has he re a c tio n s d id n ’ t come a c c o rd in g near creature sh rin k , d iffe re n t creatures in s id e When is sex w hereas the a n ta g o n ist, "S h a d o w T h is C p. 5 6 7 3 . fo r A nna to: "a is to can be see th is response abrupt ch ild " to fin a lly , Saul reacts fr a g m e n ta tio n . refuses d ic ta te d **’ I be am I, Saul Cp. 5 6 5 3 . Anna represent Saul’ s is in dark sa rd o n ic The o b e d ie n t selves: fre e d o m , C p .5 6 5 3 . The is once w ise, and A fter and the siste r" th in kin g place b e in g in an an u n i m p o r t a n t th e snubbed A n n a ", ch ild , then, she London around h e r . . . Anna’ s , first, more k in d , the u g ly o ld f l a t detached of happens "I"s : Anna, of the "t h is woman. lo ck ed i n s in g u lar self- aw aren ess to The she is how ever, she has to woman a lso the com es face t h e man who p l e a d s in the and, b r o th e r ly and a ff e c t io n a t e . in One fem ale w ith p lay m ate B e sid e s h is t h e man who i s a shudders e n jo y in g , req u ires C p .5 6 7 3 . d iv id e d man who d e f e n d s the lo v es notebook, m y t h ic a l b e in g C p .5 4 4 3 . Sau l’ s "F o r Cp. 5 4 5 3 . fig h tin g " sexual she, who of not who the w astes "c u r io u s w atched Anna t in y u nim po rtant f i g u r e lo v e and th e treated: jealo u s" y ello w a lso who anim al’ s t e r r o r s " "o b e d ie n t grow lim p , the is w ith is I cap ab le Saul w as d e s p e r a t e l y a s h a m e d , little in was t im e u g ly d eca y in g h o u se, I sex, who week the been fr o m A nna a she Anna t r a n s fo r m th e m se lv e s c o n t i n u a l l y . had it how angry, T h ir d ", longs For in stan c e, "w h o fig u re , her, belo n gs other the a ll- m o th e r about co ld, grow c o m b a t iv e of repeated. then me. to h is w hen c o m p ar es d e sire h is of to the m ost im p o rtan t Anna suggests an in c re d ib le w ith Green, w ays I am "I "s w hat to in te g r a tio n I a am e x p e rie n c e moments w h itc h - d o c to r. am ount what of I of of He repeated am. I . . . ’" shots of g u n fire . They w h ile h is scattered b its 56 just fly . He is self- c o n ta in ed w onders, present of her, w ho le fr a m e can I put i t ? " s p a tia l feels as in Anna’ s of b a rrie rs are the f l a t and t h e ir the h er ap p reh en sio n fo u r in of the co n sciou sn ess of the te rrify in g She cruelty were and part lin k e d the of a to the man i s S u ffe rin g else: gear, be e ith e r be Anna fr o m d iffe re n t I as is "...h i s how else in the the lo g ic exp e rie n c e s in sid e the w orld o u t s id e . that happens In of her the p artic les w ar: w as e x p e rie n c in g the but of I, w ar; are the h e ig h te n s and thus fin d the full part by fear a ss u m e s her w it h o u t of in te lle c tu a l the t e r r i f i c the to in v a d e d k n o w in g , she she around w orld w h ic h "I when a tt e m p t lo sin g the of it, she terror, the war as b a la n c in g w ith my "A n d 1 , 1 , of I, and I knew I Saul how and of war v ie w of the knew t h a t the fr o m h er fo rce: one of nerves A n n a knows t h e f o r c e becom es i n e x t r i c a b l e and these fragm en ted was lim itin g seen, B e in g of the have w orld. not to in we about of w ar" C p .5 6 8 3 . sp ite the But or occurs sm all fear fo u nd w orld p o ssib ilitie s, th e fear is return the vastness and th e kn o w ledge of i t w orld. w ith and raw . n ig h tm a re s, p ro b a b ilitie s, im a g in a tio n trie s jud g es. w alls thin k w it h the n ig h tm ares, in w ill "s o m e t h in g " o n ly four e v ery th in g of does we re la tio n present can notebooks. more s e n s i t i z e d of I so m u ltip le th at and in to the when co n sciou sn ess terror the som e moments t h e r e a l b e c o m in g flat, in teg ratio n terror the at is who th in ks w en t of frag ile the beco m es who he Saul person that he i s shouts, Cp. 5 7 1 D. p o sitio n fin d s man c o n fig u ra tio n A n n a 's the how ever, q u iv e r e d U n ity , he loses i t s e l f . the when A n n a bullets about She knows, fro nt the but i t s o m e t im e s , streets. in lik e and of strong A nna these 57 e m o t io n s part is w ere, of how alw ay s I is her. n ew s of W hat to to hers, and h im , kno w s the says: "I h er fille d fear, w ith h id e o u s, Cp. 5 7 3 3 . In of In her. a lso She torture Cuba. self their tw o Cp. 5 7 4 D . in under bed, But enters a has of a the an a se rie s he "W h en m ost to he lin e s in sid e in te g ratio n an in relevan t a a n x ie ty is ro o m , of stretch th is above fe e lin g s and the 't o out flat and fo llo w c o m m u n ic a t i o n , in a dwarf was and dream :. She fig u re, my we Anna the counterpart, w er e dan cing in b u ild in g s, w h ic h were black m a c h in e ry w h ic h held n o sta lg ic of truth. T h e ir c e le b ratin g an A lg e ria n they e x p e rie n c e lie s k iss is m elts stretched ja il and for A nn a afterw ards, lo n g the "t h e d e stru c tio n " A frican , so ld ie r com m unist and, and in c o m p le te n e s s T h em b a , so ld ier h is w ith w h ite creatures C h arlie of leav es Saul t h e k n o w le d g e o f A lg e ria n in d estru c tio n c h a rac te riza tio n co m m u n ist natural e x p e rie n c e s c o m m u n ic a t io n The atsm o sp here i s of the state m akes siste r, m en acin g, v isio n s beco m e d e stru c tio n m utual of t h a t h er and en o rm o us n ig h tm a r e of So, a m a le - fe m a le my h a lf- h u m a n w o u ld p rinted start seem w ith and power the B e sid e s m a lic io u s the d e s t r u c t io n , caress a my n e r v e s brother p lace, death. start e x p e rie n c e the my d e stru c tio n " fo r is jo y - in - d estru c tio n ; m ale- fem ale, open life e xp e rie n c e d : w alk’ me, fo rces. m ovem ents and T h is of she understands The leav e new spapers. "c r e a t u r e s " t o h i m " C p .5 5 6 D . w as never Cp. 5 6 8 D . d a ily A n n a 's befo re jo y fu l of w o u ld e xp e rie n c e A n n a 's w orld tie d p rin c ip le som e the in little as i f the and d e s t r u c t iv e never a that w orld" in illn e ss. enter for the W it h S a u l h is e m o t io n s w ay feel beg in s in v a sio n s. go saw te rrify in g due a present re a c tio n The in of in to on a a so ld ie r is w hen a h er C h in e se peasant. M ixed in v a d in g other d isso lu tio n . A nn a w it h p eo p le’ s h er p erso n alitie s: lik e p u ttin g lik e the on assum es need to such a lo n g The the person When buys the start for w orld The in n er both Saul and Anna s t i l l one in b u llets are p ro je c tio n in v isib le for and a Anna the is concerns h is film s in in w ay t o f a c e The p r o je c t io n is t of of the A n n a 's T h is Anna’ s her The the b e in g e m o t io n s . When r e a ffirm in g her e x p e rie n c in g for a a is an all act so ile d to of dress. open person up a in v o lv e d fee lin g s: exp ression e m p h a size d But is of is " I ’ ll one bo o k" C p .5 8 5 3 . the illn e s s . present. of n e c e ssity fu sio n and o f as dress w eight d e c id e s w riter, m yself i n b e in g so ile d the been c o m m u n ic a t io n of Anna, on c o n t i n u o u s l y n ew that b ec a m e notebooks she sense duty I she fo u r the terror: other T h is has of of w ith of Saul in d r e am h erself p lace, she Some a s p e c t s the order a - the to also of n o te b o o k p ro je c tio n ist. new d iffe re n t and the all go lden to notebook as w ith co n tin ue of one who p u t s herself p o ints w hat to e m o t io n s g o lden falsity . notebook fuses C p .5 8 0 3 . the aspect w o rth w h ile and block h id in g a n ew n o t e b o o k , untruth blu e the for an weary se n se stuck exact t im e . of is dress" w riter’ s the co w a rd ic e w ith b e in g a has dream , the sh a rin g of e x p e rie n c e s h er share w ith s o ile d of Jo yful b o d ie s however, was a o n ly one w ith o u t Anna and in d iv id u a lity "It w eight p o ssib ility fly in g The dream , leav es she a of in I ’s b u ild in g the n e c e ssity up of go lden Saul’ s that Saul d istin c tiv e and the in v isib le creature life show s, and a voyage p o rtray ed and m in d of in of the notebook. selves in to shouts lik e aspect presence is out is of the an resp o n sible co n seq uen tly , a w riting . helps Anna to lo o k carefu lly at scenes of h er life and a d m o n is h e s b lo c k in g n a m in g d isc o v e r h er and is in v o lv e d put in h er order had and gone, d istin g u ish is sid e . and to She asks film new of co n sciou s g ra sp in g her a tte n tio n of the w hat d id I th is the h im , her, The A n n a 's As to you s e e t h i s is in next the has the c h a r a c te r is tic the by of the burden beco m e. I w as w hat I situ atio n of T im e unable had to known" that strength fo r not e m p h a s is s h e a cycle, Saul Anna on h is we g o a r o u n d corresponds a n ew p a t t e r n , p ro je c tio n ist of of consequence, lo o k in g The life t im e im p o s e d the It process co n scio u s a th eir a n d we know t h a t A n n a i s shaping . and due cy cle new had and b ecom es e x p e rie n c e . " 'C a n 't C p .5983. my l i f e in v e n te d r e latio n sh ip A w ith exist, them . n ec essities v isio n faced she of to the correct that not had awakens fo r was chaos many m e a n in g s . retro sp ective “I in of^ t h e the memory break around?’ ” a out Saul to re p e titio n fo r her sto ries: my resp o n sible d e c id e s in betw een When u n tru thfu l ness of He c a l l s r e c re a tin g C p. 5 9 7 3 . m akes u n d ersta n d in g , p ro je c tio n ist. has the appears, a u n iv ersal the fe e lin g and u n d e rsta n d in g : ...t h e r e was a fu sio n . and in stead of se e in g separate scenes, p eo p le, faces, m o v e m en ts, g l a n c e s , t h e y w er e a l l t o g e t h e r , t h e f i l m becam e im m e n s e ly slo w a g ain , it b ec a m e a se rie s of moments w h e re a p e a s a n t ’ s h a n d b e n t t o d r o p s e e d i n t o e a r t h , or a man s t o o d on a d r y h i l l s i d e i n t h e m o o n l i g h t , s t o o d e t e r n a l l y , h i s r i f l e r e a d y on h i s arm. Or a woman l a y a w a k e i n d a r k n e s s s a y i n g , No, I won’ t k ill m y self, I won’ t , I w on’ t. C p .6113 A fter start these w riting be t r u t h fu l. im p o r t a n t moments t o g e t h e r , a g ain , Saul to g iv e s face h er d iv isio n the f i r s t and Saul a dvises su ffe rin g sentence of in Anna to order t h e book to she is 60 g o in g to w rite: down: The Anna, then, h illsid e on h is w rites women. in above, and h is co n tin ue A nn a w i l l tw o reality . they is in towards and "T h e r e a r e a fe w o f by the a ll the g iv e n in , who’ ll self, then, sho w s c o m p a n io n sh ip , of lin k If p eop le. m a lic io u s on the the la stin g d e stru c tio n ja rrin g s, each other openness i t and for is c ra c k in g s greater of of Anna on is both and quoted that Saul w hereas their But the The but fo rces u n ity are it not is d isc o rd an t "in t e r e x p e r ie n c e s " i m p o s s i b l e t o b e your we r e l y who voyage also still and for fe e lin g s w ith the w orld of that ex c lu siv e ly the them . haven’ t h arm o n y alw ays and on e a c h in to the due to other d iv isio n s e xp e rie n c e s he frie n d sh ip : ones co n flic ts of u n ity we r e l y on e a c h o t h e r C p. 6 1 7 3 . A nn a The and the u n d e rsta n d in g the fo rce we’ re human b e i n g s u n a v o id a b le that u n d e rsta n d in g the w orld, team , in v isib le cap acities. are a both a fter make c l e a r expresses fig h tin g " w o r ld Saul a nd s p i t e f u l co n stru ctive the go W e’ re of p ro je c tio n ist, for dry a n d F reem an . us around i n t im e . a g lin tin g fo c u s in g of e v e n t h o u g h we d o n ’ t know e a c h o t h e r ’ s nam es. other " ’ On p o in t, start W rite C p .6 1 5 3 . p o sitio n a d m it s process search Saul the to flat’ " m o o n l ig h t the tw o s e n t e n c e s ev e rla stin g A nna a the Saul Anna. book: sta rtin g liv e s. scene These h is by suggests the separate, a are, London of in fe r is Sau l’ s Saul the you watched can and women sentence h av e to b a la n c e W ulf B efo re feels in We betw een h is alone so ld ier and that p arallel two m e a n in g Anna’ s in to the first the their A nna kno w s a the Cp. 6 1 5 3 . that in , are were A lg eria, d iv id e d m akes women rifle ’ " voyage w ill tw o in sentences s till "T h e r e jo y fu l and pow er of O nly can through they th e w orld. own a n d i n t e g r a t e d leav e W ith self. no The result A nn a d i s p l a y s of Free of h er Women skeleto n of se c tio n s, the w ith the fiv e after the voyage m arriag e p oint, a rm ie s , t h e fo u r no vel. in to a w elfare centre. that is the Anna women w ere so c ial in w ork. another relevant another the the that are, h er Anna. flat" the a n a ly sis sentence, W rite Cp. 6 1 5 D . M o l l y a n d h er M o lly is Anna b o t h women w i l l separated" paragraph to start sentence C p .6 3 S D . h elp to of for not m arried d iffe re n t the These ellu c id a te starts and work w riting . FW and her tw o A nn a ways a s three the selves Anna, tw o I is not There "T h e two the A nn a work w ith Notebook are novel starts Cp. 2 5 D . B efo re tw o women yo u in the London but her frie n d start w o rk in g . the w r ite r , women sentences some p o i n t s th is When F r e e Women e n d s w ill “The a to w r ite but The alon e the n o vel. no vel: to G o lden are w ere in not to. d iv isio n . "T h e r e Labour At w ith d e c id e s The p lans F r e e Women. the London f l a t " and Free the Cp. 2 5 3 in , clo se use fo u r jo in l ib e r a t e d /f r e e women to s t a r t in or has the notebooks who d e c i d e s says: tw o to k id s p lan s A n n a 's Saul does get g o in g voyage and of The own p e r s o n g o in g last down: is A nn a who i s start n o te b o o k Anna’ s flat" p ro ta g o nist, fr a m e presents and London after there is sentences to the w rite the s e c tio n s one the p ro ta g o n ist to the notebook, no " T h e tw o women w er e a l o n e i n g iv in g the in FW w ho , So, Anna, The d e c id e s a lon e pro tago nist w it h who are Notebook. go lden t h e A nna who w r i t e s e x a c t l y t h e sam e A nn a who i s among each d e lin q u e n t has G o lden u niqu e She for She w h ile last the s e l f . The Lessing , the The school we c a n i n f e r to of is notebooks, So, e x c e p tio n d iv isio n s. in exp e rie n c e s a c c o rd in g w h o le has teach many w h ic h , Women Party, so still says k isse d , quoted have So, in to in and th is make in 62 order to co nclude the chap ter. When tw o Saul women d iv isio n says yo u are, w ith in Notebook in and her. ch ief the say ing : “ W r i t e down. expose the novel context w h ic h of w ith in w ith it the its has and a c irc le se c tio n last the of the fo u r in n er s e c tio n s F r e e Women t h a t part we fin d the separated" C p .6 3 8 3 . circ le put are Anna le a v e s the At aside and m andala, the transcend, them s i d e by s id e the is the G o lden d u a lity of the o p p o site s by th e London f l a t " w h ic h the fo u r n e g le c tin g form s. tw o fo r m w ay fo r th is squares w ay , w ith in called Free notebooks o n ly the the c ir c le . as fifth In th is women k isse d and squares w ith in the becom es those fic tio n . the The b eg in n in g In novel a The raw . the c o n fig u ra tio n w rites and at tw o the start rather is in "T h e part, a to co lo ured There sp a tial t o b a l a n c e t h e tw o women s h e i s : and fin ish e d a rtistic u n fin ish e d w ith o u t and fifth and is encom passes sentence opens g o in g com p leteness. not in c lu d e d the e x p e rie n c e betw een to The a rtistic end notebook. th is and balance of fin a l in te r p r e t a t io n and and a rtistic go lden is how ever, crudeness clo ses of She the Lessing as the c o m p l e t e s _ hi s _ s e n t e n c e at D o ris w e ll in balance app ro p riate sentences of d iv id in g w ay t o em erged, aspect Women a are e m p h a s is t o sh o w t h e e s s e n t i a l h erself. th is se c tio n s g iv e s S in g le to n , But- S a u l in fo u r to fin d rests it: he “There s e n t e n c e A nna o p e n s u p F r e e Women b u t d o e s n o t c o n v e n tio n al sig n ifica n c e to n o te b o o k T h e tw o women w e r e a l o n e i n d u ality fr o m C p .6153 a im i s need o n e s e l f " — C p .8 5 3 . W it h t h i s go lden A cco rd in g w ith in C p . 61 S 3 . in n er Anna“ " L e s s i n g 's p erso n ality the m ea n in g fu l. that who lead s to w an t to She has fo u nd com pleted, she can any e xp e rie n c e . W u l f a n d F reem an . Anna i s a put able N o te s *M ary Ann S i n g l e t o n , L essl ng CL o n d o n : fu rth er referen ces T h e C l t y a n d t h e Vel d: A sso c ia te d to th is work U n iv e rsity appear in The F ic t io n Presses, the t e x t , of P o ris 19773. A ll p. 1 0 . zF r e d e r i c k R. K a r l , "D o r is Lessing in the S ixties: The New Anatom y o f M e l a n c h o l y , C o n t em p o ra r y Li t e r a t u r e 1 3 C l 9 7 2 3 , p . 2 2 . 3 Juan- Eduardo C i r l o t , A D ic tio n ary of R o u tle d g e e & Kegan P a u l , 19713, S y m b o ls p. 2 9 2 . CLondon and H enley: CHAPTER 3 THE FOUR-GATED C I T Y Over t h e y e a r s t h e m an grov es b r i d g e t h e w ater betw een th e i s l a n d s ; th ey exte n d th e m a in la n d ; c r e a t e new i s l a n d s . R a c h el The w orld, F o u r - G a te d C ity p oints to to eyes th a t s e e and e a r s the F o ur- G a ted com pose w ith in , a house, As in Th e a v isio n a ry sin g u lar hear. F irst of the that explore of shadows, se rie s learns govern "t h e we fin d th e trapdoor a four- gated of Quest but the about of the in th is n o vel of t h e s u b m a r in e . e m erg e s as w h ic h last m in d " the a The Hesse is n o v el self and In the better. the human books M a r th a in the 1969, the horrors of city of p ercep tio n : fiv e w o r ld w alls of p ublish ed in more the the u n iv e r s e , Notebook, organs se rie s V io le n c e. C o ld rid g e, women d iffe re n c e : hum ane a d im e n sio n t o more s e n s i t i v e more of throughout the fo r c e s w a l l s ,t h e that last fo rces G o lden of C h ild re n Lynda the both in the se rie s understands fo ur is character alon g voyage d e v e lo p m e n t C ity the m ain she, to Edge of the Sea. t o a new a n d r e v o l u t i o n a r y f u t u r e , b e in g s, the Carson, gaps they and the face, t im e s . sh ip , the But w ith a sym bol of h arm o n y a n d o r d e r . The story C old ridge, M artha’ s a of w riter n e c e ssitie s the four- gated who of tries b e in g to w h o le . c ity is e xe m p lify In M ark’ s w ritten by through in n er Mark fic tio n and outer 65 M a r t h a 's c itie s, is n ec essities tw o s i d e s the w here in n er so ld ie rs fr o m outer not o n ly a preserve w ords, w hat stand the of space c ity , betw een calls on The the in n er s h o w u p. th e outer and other and c ity that hand, d e c id e of betw een the d im e n sio n M artha’ s stru ggles opposed fo rces best part but of the m e" is The for the c ity . of in n e r to the or, the it. in n er a lso c ity in h ab it cu ltiv a te d e stru c tio n then, outer The in n er gardeners h arm o n y the "t h e and d iv id e d the p o in t, in n e c e ssitie s condem n or in d iffe re n c e s p o la ritie s and their are d iffe re n t of fin d w ay in house. the On allo w p lace of The sh o w s and the to L ain g ’ s But London they p ersp ec tiv e. door the in n er that rooms and she has The am p litu d e and outer d e lim its and that the house m any d i s c o v e r i e s . M artha’ s spaces to The street, w a lk in g . streets b rin g in te g ratin g w h ile m eetin g s and e n t e r i n g But events entrance also Lynda’ s can e a s i l y e ith e r p ercep tio n s. m a in tain s, of of structure. territo ry free fr o m a a w a k e n in g M ark’ s le a v in g a n a ly sis realities. th e c o n v e r g in g th is house n ec essities real of The C it y outer in n e r a M ark’ s self v a rie ty b a se m e n t exit a nd aw areness the central an of establish ed in n e r so lid ity , moments and secret tw o c i t i e s , M artha’ s fin d in g and the fo r of reflects the gro w . e xe m p lifie s, she M ark’ s the true s e l f . context is is balance B e sid e s also the forces h arm o n y t h r o u g h spaces In J o y a n d h arm o n y w h e r e a s outer w h ic h w h o le . t h e human e x p e r i e n c e know the of The c o n f lic t a nd b e in g d e stru c tiv e c ity co n q u erin g of of the sanctuary of p lace of as in The G o lden the fragm ented novel p ublish ed in tro d u c e d . The and in Notebook, p o la rize d 1Q62 co n flic ts, concern now, a d isc u ssio n w orld. the in v o lv e w ay The the b a rrie rs 66 im p o s e d b y d o o r s fr o m room c itie s, and life city on i t s c o n flic ts: - and g a te s a fr o m turn, c ity . The illu s tra te s d iv isio n gardeners w h ic h s e p a r a t e betw een and h o u s e fr o m s t r e e t , story of M artha’ s d iffe re n t so ld ie rs - the in n e r w ay o f seein g p ro fessio n s shows and the room outer personal and w ays of d iffic u lties of b a l a n c in g grow th and d e s t r u c t io n . A new sen sitivity Characters lik e because of an have be understood to universe. fr o m My The m ain seeks g iv e s to fo r the L a i ng Them es the lik e study N o te b o o k to The a balance self 1967, the the p sy ch o th erap eutic to of other’ s and o u t e r , b e lie f to and in the w h ic h liv in g but, the order place of tim e, she because in The of children k eeping and im p o r t a n t a lon g that C i t y .' r e stra in in g im p o rtan ce o f part v iew E xp erien ce, w it h o u t tendency, "b e s t " the L essing good and bad f o r c e s t h a t h er in of - th is present c o n stitu te powers to it . fully the a tten tio n p o int P o litic s are no vel. change th is d ig n ifie d uncorrupted in d ic a te enhance in The w orld, sp e c ia l d iffe re n t concerns and the supranorm al c o n tra rie s in id e a s re latio n sh ip s C ity "c e le b r a te ", some the a by a powers a s s o c i a t e d n e c e ssitie s of and The s p e c ia l of C ity betw een a tte n tio n to b a la n c e betw een in n e r Lessing ’ s a g iv en enhances: in d ic a to rs and p r o p h e tic exp e rie n c e co n flic t, as Lessing of d ed ica tes in that in tro d u c e d are o b jec t true the v isio n a ry also C o ld ridge aspect G o lden still p u b lish ed Lynda is a provoke in sound to p ics w ith r e m a in s in L aing , in the self and true s e lf. The u n d e r s t a n d in g o f t h e p o t e n t i a l i t i e s its re latio n w ith p ro g re ssiv e ly in the gardener The C ity . and the Because of of in n er th is the real c ity are p ro g re ssio n , b u ilt up the study 67 of the novel w ill be them es m e n t io n e d i n and app endix The understood outer in n e r The as i f and a ch ie v e d . the act scenery t im b e r is C p .8 6 3 . w alk s fo r she had w ith study not o nly of a in center, a love, Cp. 2 0 3 . e x p a n s io n of and in the city : a m in u t e salty, coronet of A nd is In w ay: the fact, "In yello w green Iris is "W it h de lic a te the to o b se rv e , to of they usu ally see. concern The everyw here. But the less flo w er h u lk than had and of tw o em erged the a person and one total g iv es So, flo w er" w h ile of M artha w ho p eo p le the moved knows in h er rain b o w . here, ^ in a c k n o w le d g e m e n t the atm osphere, p e o p l e who d e s p i t e d e s t r u c t i o n w hat ju st London. happens Iris, n o v el is en o rm o us goddess but It in leaves sto ries Greek the m o r e - s to n e —than - w o o d e x p e rie n c e the an sour, houses. lik e of s e e in g . o b ject crevices and in r e aliza tio n streets areas about of the in n e r be the p la n e t. of the and can p o in t" to s e e , my m ain case land lady . lo v e is the d iffe re n t the b e g in n in g , the o b je c ts extrao rd in ary if on Notebook of act remember happens it, "n o d a l an in a h er th in g w h ic h c o n tra rie s, a dem ands p o in t E xp e rie n c e the s u rv iv a l chapter, great out of the parts G o lden of of the four The The as seen London. of is" grow th d e ta il in fr o m and the that That Iris, sees w hat of destroyed h ad put every d istric t s in c e P o litic s re tain separates Another a lm o s t of The T h e .C i t y part seein g crevice. monument state of no vel. and also d e v e lo p m e n t each of C ity r e s p o n s ib le fo r allow s w h ic h a Iris th is one of sin c e fr o m but part of d e stru c tio n days the afterw ards In the The Self w h ic h i s first to th© t h e o n l y a n d most i m p o r t a n t analyze is D iv id e d through c ity structure L essin g ’ s d iv isio n s a c c o rd in g the paragraph above in w h ic h d iffe re n tia te s Laing ’ s done the still novel seek starts 68 r e v e a lin g that a growth em erges. lo n g w alk s in about h er w hat is true and an id e n tity reality is reality e xe m p lifie d out d u rin g three in s ta n c e s . w h ile exam ining p re c io u s F irst, her She w hat of rarely b ir d s com es w ith o u t w a lk in g s p a id . h e ig h t, an a nd is Cbut constant T h is is b e in g back to c e rta in co n tin ue. out of great lift her fr o m th is to be A nd fa v o r a the t h ir d M artha i s are betw een by rev iew h er as sittin g a if under of g rasp in g life in stan ce on: was knows it other They her. was be M artha’ s "D e b t s . w h e re s h e that w ill in befo re that had Then now, a on a p ersp ec tiv e s" t h e moments o f r e v e l a t i o n u su ally co n sciou s past id e n tity becam e, her g lim p se r e m em b ra n ce b e in g of to that in ev alu a tio n M a r th a go down, could rem em b e red M artha, of she a aspect London, and second C w h e n ? ), up hot la n d s c a p e and a s k y in to b u ild her th is moment events down, of exp lo re T h is through really a c h ie v e d the to a y o u ng g i r l A n e c e ssity up a g a in w here is A nd descent a ltern ation life . new i n human T h e p r o b le m w i t h have Cp. 4 8 3 . to exists. D u rin g M artha Q u e s t , a w ish u nd ersta n d in g was d e stru c tio n begins. try in g already name. "S h e clo ud s" A and C p .5 1 3 . her to com es w ave w o u ld that to g o in g unnecessary be and fr o m a e xc u rsio n s has co m es: reveal t r e e fr o m w h e r e s h e c o u l d s e e a g r e a t fu ll to self. of she when a new p e r c e p t i o n London surnam es re v e la tio n p o ssib le M artha’ s n o t h in g had i n t e r v e n e d ? , the is On t h e s t r e e t , M artha’ s deep ly n ew and fo rgo tten . and of of There is fo r g e tfu l1 ness it, what refuses le a rn in g what a in is m ea n s. in s ta n c e : You sud den tly understand s o m e t h in g y o u ’ ve u n d e r s t o o d a l l your l i f e , b u t i n a n e w w ay. But t h e r e ’ s a p r e s s u r e on u s a l l t h e t im e t o g o o n t o s o m e t h i n g t h a t seem s n ew b e c a u s e t h e r e a r e n ew 69 w ords a t t a c h e d t o i t . But I w ant t o t a k e w o rd s a s o r d i n a r y a s b r e a d . Or l i f e . Or d e a t h . C l i c h e s . I want t o h a v e my n o s e r u b b e d i n c l i c h e s . C p. 1 1 2 3 . From th is true p oint id e n tity m e a n in g o f onwards w ill M artha dem and knows the these three in s ta n c e s M artha also beco m es in sid e h erself. F irst, w ho se m a g n ific e n t is d isco v ery effo rt to of h er keep the of re v e la tio n . d ifferen t d elig h ted strength the co n sciou s aw are o f she that sho w s spaces w ith and a dark cap acities she creatures em p ty space has never i magi n e d : But who t h e n was s h e b e h i n d t h e b a n a l i t i e s o f t h e d a y ? A y o u n g woman? N o , n o t h i n g b u t a s o f t d a rk r e c e p t i v e i n t e l l i g e n c e , t h a t w as a l l . A nd i f s h e t r i e d - b u t n o t t o o h a r d . . . S h e c o u l d move b a c k i n tim e , a n n u llin g tim e , for the moment of the e f f o r t , and s ta n d i n another c o u n t r y .. . C p .4 8 D . But another space w as phrases" p re s e n c e annoys M artha: a m a n iac Cp. 4 8 D . rhym es and tunes liv in g in London. ready There show “ Jack fell and b r o k e . . . " C p .5 0 D or m ovem ents Jack uses on women M a r t h a t o work for a the in w ard s a M artha in was a s in Yes, needs Jack’ s to house, both b e h in d id io tic w a v e - le n g t h w ords w h o se d e fin e but my d a r l i n g th erefo re, p ro stitu tio n , daughter" w ays c laim s and Jack fell s e c r e t a r y w i t h Mark C o l d r i d g e , The d efin itio n . M a rjo rie w ants a w riter. her. She her then, w ill down "M o t h e r , in d ic a te attacks fo r w a v e - le n g t h C p .B 2 D . M artha, and d iffe re n t the the crown. the so ft M a r j o r i e ’ s w o r k in g t e r r i t o r y : r e s p o n s ib ly and c o n s c io u s ly . house that if w ith dow n a n d b r o k e h i s street, for a lso that E ith e r g o on d a n c i n g ? dance is c o m m u n ic a t e s : must I to "It next W h ile frie n d d e c id e s work as a The house d iffe re n t weeks, forces M artha memory fr o m the sam e w h ic h who M ark’ s of deal the She of to house. w it h so lid ity v isit is strength of the m e e tin g about th e know w hat Lynda of are c o n fro n tin g the a d iffe re n t powers "s e t w h ic h in w ill Pretend story have the of me d i d n ’ t in n e r M a rth a ’ s need fo r The is in n e r carefully q ua n tity "Y e s . is of and c ity gardens is o n ly c ity . In fact, a o u te r - to to realities and fo rces of in in Mark, w h ic h t h e m ind to of the and a ch ie v e t h e m ". t o t a l it y of I ’ ve b e e n o f f e r e d m yself in t o c o ld order fig h ts M artha order w ith of l if e C p .1 4 9 D . c itie s d em an ds. d isp o sitio n t o work w it h a n d v i s i o n a r y p o w e r. opposed fu se book cope it a Lynda her fo r do is threatens in can At then, storage. w rites to b e tte r the in te rp re t in teg ratio n . represents p lanned There exist" stand d e ta il There presence M artha life Any s o rt - I ’ d have had to put h a l f part of M a rk : lo n g . C h rist first so lid . im p o r t a n c e o f l e t t i n g o f rooms a n d a d i f f e r e n t She t e lls London of o rd in a ry M a r t h a ’ s most s i n c e r e d e s i r e h erself. Lynda unable each s o m e tim e s w hose w h ere the house i s too a p ro p h etic d y n a m ic ize th e q u e s tio n s and the frag ility . Lynda provokes a ssim ila te to Carol and scenery D u rin g them w ife , M artha and whereas to stay in g A c c o r d in g S u r fa c in g 1, the m eet. realizes a fra id and house trie s "s c h izo p h re n ic ** reality the that comes alon g w ith th e in n er So, is b eco m es sta b ility corners. person Deep o rd in ary a cat M artha so lid ity D iv in g its Street im p l y lik e tim e, C o ld rid g e, the R adley that is and strange in and and its the su sp ic io n peo p le make the m ost p lace of harm o n y d istin g u ish e d n o n - e x iste n c e that a nodal a k in d of of a p o in t centre and featu re central exists and jo y . It is the b u ild in g . under am ong the them a c e rta in group becom es they fe ed and p ro te c t fig h t m oney, a for shadow But the "t h e or and w ants But what the conquer their to k ill they fin d octogonal sp iritu al of grow th o f th is they the w h ic h of to the need "it No co uld o n ly of the h arm o ny. understood: secret the C irlo t, sy m b o lizes not care about houses, and can the streets by of or take the c it y , an and a lie n m a tu r ity conquer earned, p lace. can destroyed one city , lib ra ry : and p r o t e c t in g growth be in n e r room u nd er is peo p le fr o m t h e o u t e r gardeners room that c o u ld o n ly be e a rn e d , p ro te c tin g the city not s o ld ie rs By fe e d in g of is to the said c i t y grows l i k e the d is c o v e r w h ite O nly d e v e lo p m e n t . a g a in is in sp iritu al accepted as a Cp. 1 5 2 D . So, of w hen The we C ity ab ilitie s fu n d a m e n t a l the about the in n er fig u re to n o tic e s e e in g it review of feeds th is the w hat m ain aspects the r e m e m b e r in g , of the such o rg an ic M a r k 's c ap acities. the who, in the of g iv en is the Mark work first to also use of talks on i t and h e n c e the im p o rtan ce o p p o sitio n most im p o r t a n t : the story When gradual dev elo p m en t, of im p o r t a n c e consequences he c o n s id e r s gardener is the b esid es illu strates h a rm o n y , of that and d estru c tio n the n e c e ss it ie s and we sin c e fo r the stop of fo rce keeps know it The s o ld ie r s O b v io u sly , need of requests a cc o rd in g e le m e n t . the not secret an o c t o g o n a l w h ic h , The outer taken: and d isc o v e ry . v ital does re g e n e ra tio n : part is U n fo rtun ately , process g ift" everybody th is in d iv id u a ls. or C p .1 5 2 D . fo r m sy n th e tize force the p ersiste n t re g e n e ra tio n . advantage of to It B ut o u t s i d e t h e i n n e r c o u ld not be s o l d , come gardeners. and r e c o g n it io n . accep ted as a g i f t " then, the to - the the c ity . power answer secret r e le v a n t. self to the that so ld ie r, expands in the d ir e c t io n of the u n d ersta n d in g a n d harm ony. life the the second p art o f of the house. M ark’ s among t h e its cap acities of w h o len ess M artha a pp roaches th e in n er ’ In w ay of T h is house p eo p le rooms a n d w a l l s the n o vel, movement i s claim s who l i v e h er in s ig n ific a n t presence. th is house have to be v i s i t e d , and The is in n er a lso d isc o v e re d dem onstrates d iv isio n s a sig n that many and th e e x p e r ie n c e apprehended. The part, b a se m e n t as the in of th is m ess" in the second exp ressio n . of Lynda’ s C o ld ridge groundbass p o ssib ilitie s stagnant the - it dev elo pm en t, C p .1 263. part Lynda fr o m of the was of seen, the sh o w s M a r k 's w ife , h o sp ita l, the them e "a gro w ing them e a in one m ovem ent: novel , m ental is the In d e e d , C o ld rid g e, the house of that the fan tastic a nd there charts its h ad p o in t r h y th m fo r in basem ent, Dorothy, liv e first a a and frie n d c e rta in t t im e . the T h is strict regu lated doctors. as "d e fe n s iv e a lim it of by p i l l s So, the cocoon fra g ility . the Cp. 1 8 8D basem ent w hose a b s e n c e b a se m e n t in Two u n ity " its is or la ck T h e ir of c h a ra c te rize d aspects human door. b e in g s of as a each space w ith are a lso liv e s effect growth, protect own lead s fo rtress them to as w e ll d e fe n siv e n e ss and other a g a in st the e n e m ie s fr o m o u t s i d e . The rooms in t h e y becom e t h e events and settin g of exc a v atin g recovery of a c tiv ity that real M ark’ s h er id e n tity : house lin k s house an are activ e p a in fu l in the A frica past esp ec ia lly w ith process m e m o r ie s . of when revisio ning past M artha’ s c h a ra c te rize s the sig n ifica n t p ain fu l the process nature q u e s tio n in g of of of an the 73 S o o n s h e moved i n t o t h e h o u s e . Room b y room s h e c r e a t e d i t , or r a t h e r , h o l d i n g on t o a d e t a i l , a c u s h i o n , t h e g r a i n o f a c u r t a i n l i g h t on a s t r a n d o r t h a t c h , s h e a l l o w e d t h e r e s t t o come b a c k . . . I t w as v e r y p a i n f u l . It was c o m p l e t e l y e x h a u s t i n g . Her s to m a c h c l e n c h e d a n d h u r t . She fo u gh t. Who fo u g h t ? C p .2423 It is fo r a lso the in sid e read in g v o ic e s, m om ents, adulth o o d. in opened, as h er u nb earab le. C p .2 4 0 D . From doubts an can d e c id e s be cause said better make yo u danger occur of at a s o m e tim e s w atched. On and the trapped t im e Lynda "S o m e t im e s that But one of a the But t h e y lo o k slu ice up gates strong, - anywhere” that she the can’t in work work on alone. In the m ore out fo r w ith the “ ’ That’ s th is that w hat h er p sy c h ia try treatm ent and that, a tm o s p h e r e doctor. symptom s o ff of so they does w ant’ , ’ T h a t ’ s w hat t h e y a im f o r : M artha are far in v o l v e m e n t contrary by treatm ent s itu a tio n Cp. 2 3 5 D . a dv ises gets "...s t a r t e d O n e w as p i t y , that of a d o le s c e n c e and need to run p sy c h o lo g ic a l o b se rv in g you e xc a v atio n or know s peace her. The ov erall n o th in g - b u t’ " b e in g pressed, M artha betw een c le n c h e d te e th . p atien t. p eo p le: onwards the letters w as a w i l d d is c u ss e d . en ric h m e n t. Lynda, been necessary childho o d, Q u e s t 's im p e ra tiv e fo r very c o n f l ic t in g . not the The other p o in t is of the and b u t o p p o s i n g e m o t io n s . so m e o n e t o h e l p M artha is th is had fin d s letters and a sp e c t s buttons tw o v i o l e n t , She needs M artha o f o p e n i n g M rs. if p o la ritie s that m other’ s scenes s e arin g , these room of The act M artha, a not the yo u and to one are yo u s e e , And th is general talk that more there is aspect rem arks about the w atches, the one to who a can of tw o and is a n d w hen yo u m ake a 74 m ista k e and s a y i t , So, M artha in tem p o r a r ily h er peo p le the I is of than tr a n se xp e rie n ce . acts and b e in g . my of re la tio n sh ip the to e x p lo sio n occurs. lin k e d happen. to So, e xp e rie n c e in th em ” T h is b e in g w ith the up of the treatm ent, p re c io u s M artha p a tie n t. So, her, u n d e rsta n d in g of h er o neself to Dr. in p erc e iv e s of that the does towards the fear, of the fo llo w she the the part to sees that annul th is the t im e Lam b the other, the to she fear w ith o u t " ’ The best it m ee tin g of the w ith of the to a the su b m ittin g work about part to bland, done process, an o b je ct. b eg in n in g W hen M a r t h a t a l k s says an b e in g w a t c h e r " C p. 2473). Lam b, for r e m a in e d is of fe e lin g s refuses as He the case c o n fig u ra tio n m eans "A n d attem pt u ntil M artha’ s tire so m e that the t h e t im e i s terror M artha general human on the M ost o f rig h t shouted. dam age not p ity , th is other human t h r o u g h is Dr. the d e t e r m i n e my o b stin a te of b e in g th is a llo w rests an betw een e m p h a size s not w ill by the s il e n t Dr. w alk im p o r t a n t persons "e x p lo d in g " He to tality : Lamb s eem ed w ill most then, But of scream ed, part of co n tro ller, w ept, Cp. 2 4 8 3 . the C p .2 3 7 D . r e la tio n s h ip r e m a in her control him : unm oved" any Lam b t o M a r t h a . and e m o tio n le s s n e s s she must C p. 5 3 D . E x h a u stio n "s h e self psychotherapy process Lam b’ s by one th e w ho leness b u ild in g Dr. fo r exp e rie n c e "P s y c h o t h e r a p y the w here the o ther, p ro p o sed by Dr. d ed ica ted is and to recover treatm ent When see b e lie f betw een her we, ^the ^ d is e q u ilib r iu m b eh av io r two p e o p l e w ith room c o n d itio n T h e w ay I tr a n se xp e rie n ce : work You’ re a s c h iz " e xp e rie n c e are la c k in g . eq u a lity . the Laing ’ s to c o n su ltin g favo u rable that rather a a successful most proves i t . a tt e m p t towards co m p o n e n ts f o r The then that p ro m p te d th is of me. part The 73 o n ly part that Through p o ssib le to is the real - t h a t ’ s perm anent, d e sc rip tio n ev alu ate the of the a n y w a y '" Cp. 2 4 9 3 . c o n su ltin g d isco n n ectio n betw een room one it is b e in g also and the other: T h e r e w as n o o b j e c t i n t h i s room t h a t c o n n e c t e d w ith Dr. Lam b a s a p e r s o n , e x c e p t , perhaps, the rug. For t h e k i n d o f room t h a t D r . Lam b w o u l d c h o o s e , a s a p e r s o n , was n o t t h i s room. When h e p u t on t h a t s u i t i n t h e m o r n i n g s , h e p u t on h i s p ro fe ssio n ; w hen he cam e in to th is room , he e n t e r e d th e im p erso n a l. Y e t , i f one co uld o n ly s e e th e m , th is r o o m 's a i r m ust b e s a t u r e d , cram m ed w ith p ain fu l and v io le n t e m o t io n s : years, p r o b a b ly , o f a n g u is h and te rro r were c o n c e n tr a te d in it . T h e w a l l s must b e s o d d e n , v ib r a t in g w ith them . E m o t io n s . B u t n o t D r . L a m b ’ s . Cp. 2 4 4 - 5 } In te re x p e rie n c e , the im p e r s o n a l is not then, room. able p sy c h ia trist to is an attitu de A c c o rd in g to L aing a real estab lish and p a t i e n t . It is that clear m ust and be fo u n d Lessin g , o u tsid e p sy c h ia try c o m m u n ic a t io n that so m eo n e e l s e betw een has to do th is. S in c e of liv in g to be the in sid e h elped dangerous by any person is Mark The C it y in p erso n a lity , o rig in a l: w atching over another" novel "p r o fe s s io n a l", of a the of Cp. 1 9 4 D . M artha has s t o r y w ith In deals m em o ries can’ t that, w ith w ith fo r another tw o a p erc e iv e s th is and help Through th e r e w r it in g ’ D efender’ , betw een I b e in g s h a rin g Desert, th is e xc a v atin g human C old ridge. battle the a k in d the of "c o c o o n ", "R e a d in g a part a p o sitio n n eglected of second a ttem p tin g m e n tio n in g a tim e , in d iv id u a l. T h is of that th e m a n u sc rip t one s id e a d d in g m any its recent a d d itio n s, sim ilar way to one the the c e rtain been p erso n a litie s, process th in gs h is to the w as l i k e try in g in n er of to and take outer c ities and of h is try in g these h is story. to Mark is understand in se rtio n s m a n u sc rip ts c o n fro n tin g h is are sim ilar w h ile they self. to come fr o m t h e sam e w a v e l e n g t h : gone down ki nd oi th is the in in to a descent, descent d a rk m a dn ess that so ft reality : o p e n in g is had to that in third started M artha now in sid e to of self the the g ro w s a l o n g w h ic h s t a n d s all lead s us to also sho w s on in and lim its It w it h fo r is in of a and o v er the d isc o v e rie s the b a se m e n t w orld. So, the weapons can e a s i l y a n n i h i l a t e on w ith new, an co n flic ts. of exp e rie n c e s v eld of the is in w ith in a she It dem onstrated the fin d s a room , to the fa m in e , the ric h n e ss and how ever, that of voyage rio ts sp a tial co ncretely, a n n ih ila tio n part the kn o w ledge center portrays th ird From sm aller another A frica t h e no vel Street. expands that m ind a n d w ar, of the R adlett There i s power chaos, the V io le n c e s e r ie s , and w arn in g . the a tro c itie s, of of w a tc h e r the co n fro n ta tio n M a r th a exp e rie n c e of sile n t e x p e rie n c e s the m a p s, exact 1y the and on house, d e stru c tio n that the Lynda C o ld rid g e . 1s one and a c o n tin u a tio n London house it w as Cp. 1 9 5 D . the C h ild ren of C o ld rid g e’ s Thom as h a d th is that in they e xp e rie n c e s befo re re g io n is of W ell, that her needs once w rote knows place, that L ik e street, a C ity th is kn o w ledge Thom as She M ark? M artha. the through The lo ver of realizes in "- Cp. 1 9 5 3 .— B u t understood streets in te rio r charts m a in ta in to also A frica. death. en tering T h e d e v e lo p m e n t c o n fig u ra tio n . through the Mark street of v o lu m e o f Quest. to w ay o f d o i n g i t " part on the f ir s t be her "F r o m h e r e , v alu ab le had T h e r e was no o t h e r Th e in s h e know s t h a t Mark "S h e up, an em pty s p a c e , M ark’ s house, h is of and new a r e a M artha those liv e d a p eo p le the in . and n o v el But it nuclear of the tran sexp erien ce in sid e th e basem ent. P e rp e c tiv e s and p o ssib ilitie s result fr o m up a n o b s t r u c t e d a n d so m etim es o b s c u r e w ay. of d isc o v e ry u nlo cked com es doors. frig h te n in g is room s a to w ards doors the w ith the she dark herself th is her past. had not she had to a nd act w ell as to Lynda’ s m e m o r ie s , It is not "t h e an a r e a o f W hen also She had w restled and had and su rv iv al: "S h e u nkno w n called "w o r k in g " unlo ck ed fo u nd out of p laces in process of and door" is movement herself The It had entered C p. 3 1 2 D . an h er d elic a te there" of to v o ic e s in t e n s e p a in . of p r o m is e through re v e la tio n . act is process access liste n in g but open and an were v o ic e s of and s t a r t s to, to fan tastic in ten se had known o t h e r 's Lynda had to fu ll territo ry known e x i s t e d . she lead an an also effo rt The d i f f i c u l t try in g houses d im e n sio n o n ly of w ill M artha e x p e r ie n c e s because liste n in g M artha not F irst, work as th is doors another en tering country. of These M artha p e r c e iv e s she out an it a llow s Cp. 3 8 6 D . In new w o r k i n g . They used t h e ir dream s, th eir slip s of tongue, t h e i r f a n t a s i e s , n o t a t a l l a s a D r . Lam b m ig h t h a v e wi s h e d them t o d o , b u t a s maps or s i g n p o s t s f o r a c o u n t r y w h ic h l a y j u s t b e y o n d or a l o n g s i d e , or w i t h i n t h e l a n d s c a p e t h e y c o u l d s e e a n d t o u c h . Cp. 3862) The new te rrito rie s t r y to s h a r e w ith and refuse Lynda and has they other to r e s p e c t. been M artha’ s im p o r t a n c e o f fo r and p eo p le a re a re a s Because c o n fin ed thoughts search to about of m ental the w hose that they many p e o p l e d e s p i s e d isre g a rd h o sp ita ls e xp e rie n c e s fo r m any s o c i e t y 's p re ju d ic e s m a dn ess a s a p r o c e s s o f re v e la tio n : p ercep tio n s, t im e s . reveal L y n d a 's the real 78 P e r h a p s i t was b e c a u s e i f s o c i e t y i s s o o r g a n i z e d , or r a t h e r , h a s s o g r o w n , t h a t i t w i l l n o t a d m it w hat o n e know s t o b e t r u e , w i l l n o t a d m it i t t h a t is, except as it com es out perverted, through m adness, then it is through m adn ess and its v a r i a n t s i t m ust b e s o u g h t a f t e r . C p .3 8 9 D But m a d n e ss is a concept p eo p le who h a v e room , w alls are covered "n o r m a lit y ". Tw o eno rm o us of the p lanet. h a llu c in a tio n s W it h w h e r e bombs a r e in d ic a te those the w h ic h d elim its also a ir, c all make d isp o sa l of s p ra y in g the other been to R io ts, Laing ’ s E xp erien c e: a nd "...in Poverty, by h a v e we a r c h i e v e d our a c iv iliza tio n The door m a in ta in e d im p o r t a n t n ew to by the those to keep te rrito rie s. in by fo r call m in d that brain . sold. were outrageous U n fo rtun ately , to up in the w ay them selv es the doors used d e n o tin g The m ig h t have n o r m a l. of o urselves a d ju s t e m e n t a On W ar, P o litic s of of the C p .3 0 Q D . w alls for to flags "a r e a s d e stru c tio n " and M artha also c h e m ic als re lativ e own Lynda Mark and fall- out, v io la tio n its flags w arfare sh ip s" These p laces Y ello w m arkers comment in of fr o m Cp. 3 0 9 D . a opens who the b o m b - b la s t s , colours most germ are reality B lack to d e s t r u c t io n : c ap ac ity to liv e room of human the fo r to study of the w h ere t h e y a r e s o l d . co n centration a p p are n tly d riv e n th is d elim its P riso n s" in s p ira tio n "O n ly Mark d isch arged v a ry in g p ic tu r e flags, m a terials ap p ly M ark’ s portray d ed ica tio n o il In w o r ld co n ta m in a te d crops, p erfect products w aste, a lw a y s v o ic e s. control the the hear not the m ake the where w a te r w a ll of red for rad io ac tiv e fo r F am in e, drugs p laces and maps that does the m an ufactured and a tte n tio n so il and w ith little fa c to rie s the that sad A gain to C p .7 63. reality it is are a lso fin d in g them are usu ally 79 p ro h ib ite d The b y t h o s e who o n l y h a v e e y e s fo u rth part of the novel for a n n ih ila tio n . estab lish es tw o fo rm s o f e x p e r i e n c e : m a dn ess a s s o c i a t e d to Lynda’ s com m union. Through m adness, re g io n s of w ith terrors perpetrated by ch a rac te rize s a the p eo p le, w orld L essin g of fic tio n c itie s that are c o n flic t w rote present in the the of tw o very th eir the s p a tia l o p e n in g of th is I have represents, and to fu se, r e b ir th . the two areas, already The the tray that t h e m ilk that w ith w ell on a part the n o vel, in n e r and of H is turns in to as other and process have, p o ssib le a a door. m any a c t s Carol of the outer p lace of of M artha d isso lu tio n an b e in g as a u n ity m ilk . the of the cu riou s a broken p ie c e s t i l l is through the in teg ratio n the fa v o r of of order after w h e re to d isco v ery betw een sh a rin g consequent c o n ta in s "t h e basem ent b a rrie r im p u lse r itu a l w ill d istin g u ish e s reality in the a nd their and L y n d a ’ s as occurs Lynda’ s and It C ity , through in attitu de c arrie s starts self geography C h r is t her d istin c tio n The of p assin g h er their in "o r d in a r y l i f e " im p lie s p ie c e s im p o s e th e abandonm ent o f c o n ta in in g saucer to as groups lang uage, of m en tio n e d , break ing a that d isin te g ra te women e v ery th in g and lo v e v io len ce w h ic h h abits, M artha’ s act then, to door T h eir a and real. c o u n trie s i n t e r e x p e r i e n c i n g. down a lm o s t tw o c o u n t r i e s unlo cked n o n - o r d in a r y l i f e " 2. m erge, th is co n fig u ra tio n M a rth a ’ s co u n try as b e in g door In of betw een exp e rie n c e currents, in d iv id u a ls basem ent sp e c ific in As M artha’ s w orld b eco m es the to v io le n c e , im p e r s o n a l s h a r in g . sam e w ay t h a t borders occur. and b rid g e re g e n e ra tio n . lim its h isto ry , and Mark and o f In by com m union sound and a an at and act of th ro w in g break in g Lynda of lap s and w here M artha do es 80 the sam e o n ly the sy m b o lic a lly . b e g in n in g of The a o t h e r ’ s m in ds b u t a l s o ritu a l process of of com m union k n o w in g th e hope fo r and s tim u late s of en terin g the e x tin c tio n not each of any k in d of b ar r i e r . The shape of the M artha’ s and Lynda’ s "M a r x i s m and M a d n e s s ", the archetype w orks. as of C irlo t, h av in g , sta b ility " do w i t h its to a the the a Desert as use symbol the square, s itu ta tio n D , who not yet M artha a nd Lynda the urgent room i s is as part if tem porary as at the the in fo r m s m in im al h o ld in g up of be, or A b a n g in g p assin g the fo r m o f the ev o lu tio n of w o u ld or e v o lu tio n , So, M ark’ s number When fe e lin g , has In it is A C ity in regard to u s e s J u n g ’ s comment: in n er room , and re g u la rity c irc le . c o m p o s it e basem ent its room i n and presents An o b j e c t term s C irlo t h im se lf" . and in and p lu ralist testin g , to the square o rg an iza tio n C irlo t as Lessing’ s firm n e ss re g e n e ra tio n . the sq u are, the of w o u ld a rticle of of o b je c t. a cc o rd in g her q u a te rn ity some of that the m e a n in g d esc rib es s y m b o ls sp iritu al a in in w ith in of im p ressio n octogonal in sid e room , self the w ith o f a task stage the square one n e c e ssity a c k n o w led g in g , s y m b o lo g y the of represents is on fo r m of the e v o lu tio n ary stag e o f "t h a t use ev o lu tio n , betw een u nd erstand able p ro v id ed P ic k e rin g , the of study An o c t o g o n a l p o sitio n to w hen fo r m e x p l a i n s moral ir r e g u la r ity . Jean "t h e "fr e q u e n t A n o th e r shape, also D i c t i o n a r y o f Sy m bo ls, p sy c h o lo g ic a lly , correspond in p oin ts w ho leness in h is w ith has e x p e rie n c e . the c o n s t r u c t i o n "3. to basem ent we we C sy m b o lizin g state of then th in k cannot c h e c k in g , a g a in st the the man about fo rget that c h a lle n g in g , w alls of the fr o m o n e s t a g e t o t h e o t h e r . the square, of these w o u ld c o r r e s p o n d tw o a fem ale to It a characters 81 to a n o t h e r d im e n sio n o f k n o w le d g e , Many o b je c ts in s id e r e a lit y that fav o rs shoes, fo r fo rgo tten the of on ch a ir, sig n ifica n c e frie n d s angle the or to other" presence w it h "a take of are a one C p .5 0 0 D . tw o th an concealm ent. of e x a m in e d shoe w o u ld opposed one w ith a d v e rtise m e n t th em , s h o w in g sig n ifica n c e w ay o f v io le n ce voyage in . tw o of lik e women the that of the By b e i n g in the left to o k on s ig n to exact c u sh io n s rig h t p o ints basem ent: lo v e" tw o other c o n v e n tio n a lize d H ell" p ointers, have to co n fro n t, as w e ll as the and to the of m e a n in g w ay an the is who w orld of In d ia n ’ s at of a A p a ir m e a n in g an in sid e “ God a ap p aren tly set p a ir of carefully, or be fo rces of shoes g ip sy ’ s Another in d ic a to rs The p r e s e n c e and m a in ly th e d i s p o s i t i o n m e a n in g o f t h e the yo u and b e in g . also presence p a ir tra v e llin g Juxtaposed, theatre C p .5 0 15 . a tr ib e s m e n : the cu sh io n s of the "a if are rather reveals o b jects: a room re v e la tio n In stan ce, d isp o sitio n the u n d e rsta n d in g these o b je c ts of life and these o b jec ts d a ily , out the and the sig n a l chaos towards and a new d im e n s io n . In the process of a voyage i s sea. M artha sm e ll salt lo o k in g a ir" exp e rie n c e represents "M a r t h a e m p ty , the rested, as if she in sw ing Cp. 5 0 7 D . The fe e lin g fr o m another is the of face down rocked in basem ent, of the lo ng the eyes a of w ater deeper share sp irit the vessel in tr in s ic another in sid e the - that under is who carpet, w aves of b e in g in to women fo rce sway u n d e rsta n d in g of on and d im e n sio n channel d y n a m ic is m the a sy m b o lic th© kno w ledge, then, in sid e feel life of d isc o v e ry very s ig n ific a n t "c o u ld at v essel, of and or to of the areas. The d im e n sio n and and clo sed, reef in te g r a te : her beyond m in d w h ic h 82 crashed the ro a r in g In th is rev ea lin g . ro a r in g M ovem ents are im p o r t a n t and in te rn a l e a rth in g s e a " Cp. 3 1 5 D . in land , towards w hat s in k in g m ovem ents o ut of concerns the co n fro n tation B asic a lly , in Mark these en tering the basem ent. Lynda’ s and gestures are much c irc u la r, around g e s t u r e o f M ark’ s m o vem ents. areas the of th is of and t e s t in g e arth in g They c h a r a c te r ize of o rd in ary M ark’ s acts the t im e sen sing e xp erien c e liv in g e xp erien c e q u e stio n , and near of and the life land of in se c u rity : he nonsense, as it earth not prepared and of able, fo r the e x p e r ie n c in g to Cp. 4 9 9 D . let go of M o v e m e n ts , m a k in g r e s o l u t i o n s : ascends w alls But of both or h is to go it in d i d n 't "H e e ith e r to fo llo w th is is acts and path in sim p le c e rtain M artha, clo ser h is to by a new or earth. sin k s stay Cor in is act of e ith e r he the covered m ore d a n g e r o u s in been Lynda" the it, w ith in sin k ?} He atm osphere in to w ith in Lynda’ s hadn’ t h im se lf at and p o sitio n u p stairs w ant, s in k to than more s o l i d , of of fo llo w in g a to le a v in g around others. correspondence p refers and more en tering Mark e s c a p e s or Mark and a of M artha? C p .4 9 9 3 . a have in d riv e n of voyage: external correspond so lid ity a n a ly sis re sp o n sib ility then, on of know s h im se lf s t u d y room i n s t e a d women of been o rd in a rin e ss descends. are therefore, "h a d w ith the w a lls. lack the c o n fin e m e n t m o v em en ts, around sin k in g and, starts M artha’ s presence the of e xp erien c e the the basem ent, then, w ere, and space p a r tic u la rly m ovem ents C o ld rid g e’ s and m ore the are or realities. and p h y sic a l a w ays. room of p lace of sen sing of p o ssib ilitie s. Lynda, d isc o v e rie s. in o p p o sitio n Her m ovem ents to M ark, are does not ch a ra c te rize d leav e by the the 83 v isib le and towards them . back to them a n d b ack to the the in in v isib le Lynda a of desperate fall outw ards b ric k " knows her not p o iso n ed "a of in d e e d ,b e e n cured p ain fu l and dem an ds the the of knows te llin g c o n fin e d , sin c e any y o u th . presence of M a r th a is woman a n d , L y n d a ’ s q u e stio n aw are of to Th erefo re, e ith e r portrays in the change of a g a in st it cause o v er it rub ble im p o rtan t. of been the to and Lynda a a of space to of lia rs usually of numb powers by the and and about peo p le. She has, treatm ents in order Lynda’ s who w o r ld w orld o rd in ary of preceded been co n scio u s v isio n a ry siste r w it h h e r , h er r e m e m b e r in g su b m itte d th is w ith w o u ld has She has h er person sta y in g changes. sleep" act h er p alm s is takes w ith room out been about a the she b e in g in h er th is w alls doped and of m in d o f a n o t h e r of step s p a c e ". to b e lie f the them k in d in terexp erien ce. has lit g o in g She to im p o r t a n c e c lear "n o t p eo p le. dangers be of She w h ile d o in g out in s id e a w h ile pressed dem and d e e p e r them . and im p ly if step d ire c tio n w alls stares "s h e as the the and o n ly exp e rie n c e to as im p o rtan c e p a in . let But o u ts id e cowards w alls: w ay, that d is c o v e rie s referred to movements urgent C p .S O l D . another the Her these by ag ain st senses and Lynda’ s and bangs and feels, room. structure w alls iso latio n leav in g or shares and that d is c o v e r the agony that trie s to is of is stay in g liv e s enter t h e w ay o u t constant very of the the such in sid e the house: S h e was a s k i n g : why c a n ’ t I g e t o u t ? What i s t h i s t h i n g t h a t h o l d s me i n ? Why i s i t s o s t r o n g w hen I can im a g in e , and in d e e d , h a l f remember w hat i s o u t s i d e ? Why i s i t t h a t i n s i d e t h i s room I am h a l f a s l e e p , doped, p o is o n e d , and l i k e a p erso n in a n ig h t m a r e s c r e a m in g f o r h e l p b u t n o s o u n d s come 84 out So, the basem ent transcended and external sees that a c h ie v e d if in you the as w e ll reality ones. in sid e : on room ? as the of a r e a lit y In the hard w ill "w ill work sim p ly s t e p seem lik e sen sin g yo urself w alls a for have the w alls» be o u tsid e , Lynda the aw areness go to w eakness, h o rrib le to fr o m b o t h i n t e r n a l not to fo r g e t let the o u ts id e d iffe rs of is don’ t testin g you that th in g "R e m e m b e r , alw ays, It free" little sleep, for a and th in C p .5 0 9 D . cell A nd that an f o u l e d " C p. 5 0 Q D . W h ile goes t h r o a t ? Cp. 5 0 9 } fa v o r one d a y , a n im al a a stra in in g t h e m ost im p o r t a n t go p lace, of on o u ts id e w hen the w ere in in sid e fo r of in the them are "n o r m a l" to c o m p a r is o n a stay as so realizes: alw ay s w ith nature shut b o d ie s, b eh in d a of of their lo n g as the "b e t t e r M artha p o ssib le life mad, of if o u tsid e the basem ent moments are g lo r io u s around h er but the are needs else" p eo p le o n ly the and p rice yho feel in sid e their drugged eyes, that for not made it C p . 5 2 1 D. liv e but The o n ly o u tsid e , p ain basem ent. o u ts id e the te rro rizin g : aware o f o th e rs in sid e occurs o rd in ary d r e a m in g can in sid e n um bn e ss en clo sed and not b e in g u n d ersta n d in g w ith a n y th in g c h a ra c te ristic that of b e in g s in , w ants thin k of Her human and dealt dangers m o r n in g . iso la te d , to process has s e e in g net d isco v ery the the h erself w o rld, betw een of w h ile of who fresh s le e p - w alk in g , them selv es M artha it d e fe c tiv e of d e sire c o n scio u s moments all, c o n d itio n M artha, e sse n tia lly h id e o u sly im p o ssib le process basem ent, in te g rate s p r e d o m in a n t above the b eco m es she hard house. leav in g "t h e y a in sid e reality , w h ile such and the From the c o n fin e m e n t, b ein g mad is 85 to be a lum p of lethargy as t o r e m a in a lu m p , But to the fast have for to m ind. a “ head for concentrate be c a m e jerk, and Lynda m illio n suffer sets its e lf in fast songs, sounds, becom es s u r e o f b e i n g atm ospheres fr o m v i o l e n t and a the a r e n 't ocean probe of or fitte d " of a and after a u d itio n so of fu n c tio n s is that of body and so ftly to b a rrie rs and her that or if a is there both is a e x p e rie n c e it w ith and th is the the use c o uld also that the fo rce the is a they th is en e m y , the their extrem ely e x p e rie n c e the be be uses transfo rm s core, even to destroy , m in d s : p o la rize s w ith d iffe re n t human b r a i n creature a cc u sa tio n s M artha peo p le, co uld a phrases, M artha q u e s t io n s w o m e n 's if p lugged words, it of M artha "a s m ind d iffe re n t radar, m o ve, provoke, to c o n ta in the lit e x p e rie n c e e x p e rie n c e so M a r t h a 's them selves, many fr o m "B u t e x p e rie n c e They of a th is b e in g a b le p ercep tio n, because w ell. w anted a n d p e o p l e w o u ld u s e i t enters have p o ssib le . l im b s “core" energy m oon- walker But as women and then f a d e d " C p .5 1 3 3 . T h eir the awake B e s id e s another, h ell. areas: stratagem Both re c e p tiv e , M artha’ s utters tw o the w ho se p a in m a c h in e : d e m a n d in g stay self the v o ic e and m a in of T h is im p o r t a n t of t h e movem ents h a v e t o c e a s e s o body the W it h t h i s C p .5 1 7 3 . sounds in to on C p. 5 1 2 D . r e c e iv in g th is to the a a rad io , a d isin te g ra to r, self- hater. liv e s of ones. danger space bomb or and k in d h ig h . sim u lta n e o u sly , one cam e i n t o is lig h t, b a rrie r. ran to of of dance" sound rad io any heavy and very v io le n ce to use have memory u n d e rsta n d in g the so and clear, to have esp ec ia lly on b e in g p ercep tio n the even lig h tn e ss not to accu m u late and very above w ill r e m a in n o n - p e r c e p t iv e a n d h e a v y " Cp. 5 2 5 3 . p erio d s d iffe re n t bubble and lo ng E n e rg y has that to p rice that "c le a r in lit 88 space" of u n d e rsta n d in g d e stru c tiv e Jerusalem w orld presence. in the in sid e corresponds re b irth . on a to L ik e bulk month There she of h er to She beg ins M artha is a g a in use good and the g r o w th the to can very the She to by and of the the liv in g u nd erg oing a b ilitie s is and also Cross. fu lly a process of seein g of in of In the she the by as is in , D e v il exp e rie n c e s on of her cap acities C p .5 6 4 0 . In is h er regard as to Bash good and the through the D e v il m a r c h in g th is fig h t of sid es an can and M artha body, the she to Jew both ego. eat. M artha k in d both p erso n ality of to But She is the w ith enem y, a hated the not w e ll the she of packed London and the a house. of e xp erien c e, v isio n d isso lu tio n fa cets d e v ic e " Tortured, th is the sp e n d in g C p .5 5 1 D . thoughts p lace conducted the of u n d e rsta n d in g "r e c e iv in g the if P au l’ s d e c id e s co n scien ce" in te n sity p erc e iv e s of co n stitu te s "in t e n s it y hatred d isc e rn street, occur A fter top the little of the fo rces nephew, self. the more o b ject order Torturer of C h rist, a sleep the in M artha statio n s as to w ith the the a n d a t w o - fa c e d p r e s e n c e i n s i d e h e r s e l f . Germ an. w e ll once a nd M ark’ s w ith goes on s h e h a s h a d on t h e s t r e e t s desp ite t h e enem y o f f . ev il, have "g a lv a n iz e d that, sense country, M a r th a A rm a g e d d o n a n d does not happen. house, e x p e rie n c e the the c r e v ic e and th e flo w er of facts g u ilt, realities w o r ld destru c tio n e x p e rie n c e P au l’ s basem ent, Lynda. d isc o v ers at C p .5503 self- hater, of te rro rizin g stay p lans e xp e rie n c e " fo rces the no w ith the and tim b e r, phase in when we co m p are t h e i r b a se m e n t the w ith t h e s y m b o lic e x p e r ie n c e w ith M artha’ s another e x p e rie n c e M a r t h a 's of co n fro n tation the The p resen ce o f no vel, the and and w h ile also past has as instru m en t, in s tru m e n t, 87 M a r th a know s a b o u t th e c o m p lex ity o f is the a m a c h in e for c o n v e rsio n a n o t h e r " Cp. 0 6 6 3 . A nd t h e e n e r g i e s d isc o v e ry the reflect v io le n ce : “If then a I ’m F in ally , go to had is n o tic e s these gallery still back has all a very that dangerous But co n sciou sn ess that the true s e l f that Lynda, peo p le. lead s T h is Lynda lo v in g is has a cc o r d in g try in g the C p .5 8 2 3 . Lynda can pow ers. house who she now l i b e r a t i n g The co rrect o v erc o m e a ll use o f the provokes An really a health y an The woman to m a rry the m ental a n n ih ila tin g the is fo rces in the h er to the the of liste n e r, h erself p ills, c risis deathly v o ic es a to in fa v o r liv e of the and a to l i v e k in d or the in a of she c r ie d ; g litte rin g of fa r m e r that w here e v e r y t h in g was p o i s o n e d , a to w ith e x p e r ie n c in g dew" suffo cated a m arzip an gardener a d iffe re n t L y n d a ’ s in s t r u m e n t of a lso re la tio n sh ip happens w anted eith e r en erg ies power It w ith who she em bo dy o v e r w h e lm in g "E n g la n d utter to to w atcher, in a b ility England fin a lly of lead She M artha d e d ic a t e s is. me, e x p e rie n c e has of t o u n d e r m in e . to th e w orld o f — a dream : w ish e d have of d ec id es B u t an e p i s o d e m arks L y n d a ’ s e f f o r t in jec tin g v isio n a ry and h er b y them . enem y was to h o sp ital. w hat the Lam b t r i e d relatio n sh ip to lost self C p. 6 6 7 } . in n e fic ie n t. d isc o v e rie s not M a r th a others of aspects the in to products re je c ts" that extrem ely to M ark’ s house, ex p lo siv e re v e la tio n some has once Dr. n o rm ally se n d s regulated and are body energy who a r e D e v il, who m a n i p u l a t e s she been to the of "A the process nature’ s co ncludes M artha’ s re tu rn in g who She in creatures by fu n c tio n : k in d present and u n d e r m in e d house. one human b e i n g s freak s any person self- hater. of and i t s of subhum an of b it M ark’ s A fter nature it in self- hater. is life . order She to has 88 a lw ay s its been the ‘'s a n i t y ” . C h rist the But fin d of of a so c ie ty the hope in e m p h a size s, process Lynda v ic tim is breakthrough of destroys the sisterh o o d the s t a r t in g a reality that to s h a rin g point of another and of t h e e n e m ie s women, that Carol tr a n sfo rm a tio n . of re b irth , re n e w in g From M artha contact of among and human b e in g s. P rep a ra tio n the no vel. p eo p le Mark lik e Mark about is term s of p eo p le" by d iv e rse h is o n ly fo u n d in by w in d , C p .5 975. Mark in The a in c e rtain room , exam p le parts rain , of the Memorandum tragedy One end etc, of of and w h ic h of w orld less prepared then, of is the p lan et. a v o id the fo r and, p ointing , so lu tio n s fo llo w s: la rg e in "8 . vuln erable p red icted c o lle c tiv e of ad vise d e stru c tio n not also part w ill of p rep aratio n the catastrophe, foreground can but fo u rth areas p o ssib ilitie s study the the a a n n ih ila tio n in must b e at p re p arin g the not c o n ta m in a tio n and keyword o rg a n iza tio n . L o c atio n s of of w alls d e m o n stratin g a is fu ture aware the is to n um bers by Lynda in s a n ity and in se n sib ility . true There is self. T h is u n d e rsta n d in g r ic h im a g e s . the le th a r g ic a of m om ent, how ever, moment in teg rates the M artha i s in fa vo r human that re c o n c ile s nature b e in g ’ s "c o r e " the p ro ta g o n ist of and in M a r th a self in th is an and w ith her allow s the a tm o s p h e r e of scene that r e je c t s re c o n c ilia tio n . She w alk ed b e sid e the riv e r w h ile the m u s ic th u d d e d , f e e l i n g h e r s e l f as a h eav y , im p e r v io u s , i n s e n s i t i v e lu m p t h a t , l i k e a p l a n e t doomed a l w a y s t o b e d a r k on o n e s i d e , h a d v i s i o n i n f r o n t o n l y , a m y o p ic s e a r c h l i g h t b l i n d e x c e p t f o r the tin y t h r e e - d i m e n s i o n a l p a t h o p e n i m m e d i a t e l y b e f o r e her eyes in w h ic h the o u tlin e of a tree, a rose, em erged t h e n subm erged i n d a rk . S h e t h o u g h t , w ith 89 the d o v e ’ s v o ic e s in her so litu d e : W here? But w h e r e ? How? Who? N o , but where, where. . . Then sile n c e and the b i r t h of a re p e titio n . W here? H e r e . H e r e ? H e r e , w h e r e e l s e , you f o o l , y o u poor f o o l , w h e r e e l s e h a s i t b e e n , e v e r . . . ? Cp. 6 0 7 3 M artha’ s task moment that of th is is grow in n er of life its A p p en d i x of not co n scio u sn ess the m any o nly to and o f the c a ta s tr o p h e , and in to and b r e a k in g the c o n stitu te s su rv iv a l co n scio u sn ess c o n sid e ra tio n w h ic h the the tra n se x p e rie n c in g It co n sciou sn ess in v o lv es p re se rv a tio n develop of a the h u m a n k in d . v isib le of fo rces the novel that p rev ail catastrophes but t h e us© o f t e l e p a t h i c also pow ers, c ity o b je c ts w e ll as fo r c e s The of o n ly a ir, by the the sa n ity , le ad s of n o vel. of Great cam ps of is human fo o d sh a rin g , the They m a in co m p rise the a novel re v e la tio n and of So, th e atm ospheres i n the gardener of forces the w o r k in g a t study of at d estru c tio n the as r e c o n s t r u c t io n and b e l i e f . Catastrophe d ig n ity of the h elp t h e human b e i n g . the of can al 1 ows in to and c o n clu sio n the of that t h e n ew r a c e o f c h i l d r e n , be a through. the v is io n a r y powers o f w ill act of Only sen sitivity the is l a n d , outer b e g in n in g the b e in g . and w a te r result In B rita in to refugees an in fact, but re latio n sh ip s and of a by a n eglect becom e process exp e rie n c e . d isa ste r north total p eo p le also a to m ic the of of and A frica of the p o iso n ed not of c o rru p tio n T h is decadence the p o p u la tio n to and to isla n d s in lik e Lynda the north of S c o tla n d . In th is resp o n sib le catastrophe. salvage in In te r m s th is o p e r a tio n of of m a n k in d , p red ictio n aspect the of use and of p eo p le p rep aratio n telep a th ic fo r powers are the is 90 ba sic. Lynda co rrectly on extrem ely w o r k in g m eets doctor v isio n a ry b en efic shall fo r never prepare p eo p le g ro w ing and a ctiv itie s a and a a b ilitie s their p a n ic . make them n ew ch a rac te rize group and fu rth er cause p erceiv in g that and On a p eo p le whose b e h a v io r the and of of the h e a rin g v isio n ary who work r e la tio n s h ip a ction . contrary, c o n scio u s fo r m s of they T h eir have to im p o r t a n c e of and person is se e in g w ith - telep athic powers as w e ll. M artha’ s island . of p lace There the s im p lic ity and we c a n e x p e c t , of refug e, group she a liv es h ealthy after the w ith trie s re la tio n sh ip . catastrophe, to keep T h eir the is an essence exp e rie n c e s, as a r e s u p r a n o r m a l: . . .i t was a l s o d u r i n g t h a t y e a r when we becam e aw are o f a sw eet h ig h l o v e l i n e s s som ewhere, l i k e a f l u t e p lay ed o n ly Ju st w it h in h e a r i n g ... It was d u r i n g t h i s y e a r t h a t m any o f u s w a l k i n g a l o n g or i n g r o u p s a l o n g t h e c l i f f s or b e s i d e t h e i n l a n d s t r e a m s met a n d t a l k e d t o p e o p l e who w e r e n o t o f our co m p an y, nor l i k e a n y p e o p l e we h a d know n t h o u g h some o f u s h a d d r e a m e d o f them . I t w as a s if th e v e il betw een t h i s w orld and another had w orn s o t h i n t h a t e a r t h p e o p l e a n d p e o p l e fr o m t h e s u n c o u l d w a lk t o g e t h e r a n d b e c o m p a n io n s . C p. 6 5 8 ) T h is race. sane The We exp e rie n c e re s to r e s fe e lin g w h ic h , tran sfo rm atio n , of b e in g ; part a cc o rd in g is the b e l i e f to a lso present of L aing , in a in a future group, is th eir the of to t h e human c o n stitu tin g s tartin g point a of liv e s: And t h e t e x t u r e o f our l i v e s , eating , sle e p in g , b e in g t o g e t h e r , has a n o te i n i t that c a n ’ t be q u i t e c a u g h t , a s i f we w e r e a l l o f u s a h a l f - t o n e or a b r i d g i n g c h o r d i n som e sym p ho n y b e i n g p l a y e d out of earshot w ith ic eb erg s and fo rests and m o u n ta in s fo r in s t ru m e n t s . There is a t r a n s p a r e n c y , a c r y s t a l l i n e g le a m . C p .6 6 C D 91 T h e ir are born fu ture on sile n c e the they becom es is la n d . are p o ssib le Three content. of because them a r e Other s e ld o m a c h i e v e d b y L y n d a d u r i n g cap ab le of the v o ic e s frig h ten ed . There up c r y in g and the because t im e Another group fa ntastic to the has a p ictu res children is their fr o m ch ildren C p .6 6 2 3 . of the are after their later is These g u ard ian s th eir F ra n c is A of seven the sc a tte rin g C o ld rid g e, in to of a lon e are T h e ir g ro w n children, co m m u n ity a n d throughout M ark’ s son, e xp la in s b e in g b o r n now i n the hum an race h id d e n p la c e s i n be e x p e r im e n t a l for: lik e model thorn. and the Joseph, the seers the h isto ry three a g irls, n ew r a c e letter black lik e has them and one d a y a ll yo u had to ch ild’s "H e s a y s more l i k e P eo p le Nature these and M artha’ s the w orld, and the em o tio n a lly " p r o m is e o f w orld. of d istin c tio n up bo ys the the are w ill fo u r of freely . among hearers end m ost because w hen o l d e r . "t h e y and behave eyes of They are su ffe rin g h im groups a n d t h e p r o m is e t h e y s t a n d of let in cap acity c h a ra c te ristic a b ilitie s sort and who even e xp e rie n c e s. c lo sin g r e u n io n that a a b o y who s t a y s not but They h ave th e a u t h o r i t y and t h e kn o w ledge of century. the see. separateness and is of h er ch ildren m ute have m ise ry w ill h ab it they w h i l e sm a ll other others of the born ch ild ren h e arin g tu ning of and me enough are of a us" Cp. 6 6 3 3 . A fter cam p i n as M artha’ s death, N a iro b i. p o ssib le . He There the o p in io n s is judg ed c o m m i s s io n e d t o work of a departm ent, and a about by C old ridge. letter to c h ild , is sent to a h im a r e a s d e p r e c i a t i v e c lassifie d w ith F r a n c is sends black D o c to r K a lin d e M’ tuba S e l i n g e , F ra n c is m e n tio n in g and head the doctor’ s opinio n sub no rm al fo r 3rd to the grade orders Joseph him m ile s to 7th, w ork. f a r m ? Cp. 6 6 4 ) . fo r about be in W it h th is and Another order fo r process, Joseph b u sin e ss g a rd ening Joseph, use the c ity in n ew w ay o f the deep land order hope its of to d e stru c tio n . w ith the to also a ego as sane a "It w ill rest w ith "t h e c u ltiv a tio n of is of w ith M ark’ s order of seven lim it. It of the p eo p le. The story the lik e in The d iv in e , in about p oint h im , telepathy w ords, and to gardeners. who, present land that sta rtin g p eo p le servant be in devoted the the Laing ’ s The s o ld ie r be of co n sciou sn ess, in fit vegetable lim its re latio n be But on g a r d e n i n g " C p . 6 6 9 ) . r e m in d e r w ill as Pu t o F r a n c i s w ill the g u ard ian s, N a iro b i, of on t h e by T s ie n w ith h im ed u c a tio n . work t h e cam p: fu ture secret w ill classes a re allow ed o u ts id e m a in tain , b e t r a y e r " C p .1 4 5 3 . rests is that the sent gardens B a t t *s and c ap ac ities E xp e rie n c e , its land and liv in g prophecy in of the fin d h im t o a t t e n d c o u r s e s of in n e r and No a l i e n s c u ltiv a tio n the p a p er in "H e a c a d e m ic yo u c o u l d o ffic ia l parks ch ild: fo r B a i t ’ s o c cu p atio n in sp e c t of b lack u nfit Perhaps fro m t h e c i t y . w ill the B a t t 's sp irit and A nd of a w ill and of P o litic s no lo n g er w orld but not w ith M o tes 1C a r o l P. C h rist, Sp lrltual 2C h r i s t , P iv ln g Q u e s t C B o s to n . Surfacin g : Beacon P r e s s , Women W rlters on 19863. p. 6 7 . J u a n - E d u a r d o Cl r i o t , A Pi c t l o n a r y o f S y m b o ls R o u tl e d g e s & K a g a n P a u l , 4J u a n - E d u a r d o C i r l o t , 5C h r i s t , Deep and p. 7 3 . 19713, p .292. p. 3 0 7 . CLondon and H enley: C HA PTER 4 B R I E F I N G FOR A DESC EN T I N T O H E L L Category: In n er- sp ace f i c t i o n th e r e i s never anywhere to go but in . For Lessin g , There that Is a B rie fin g sentence c h a rac te rize s a at fo r the r ic h a D escent In t o H ell b eg in n in g p erio d devoted to o b s e r v a t io n and to the w h ile her She i s land lady , state of w a lk in g . of w hat starts love, is" the In ta k e fatig u ed man in fo r m a tio n m an’ s if suggest never p re c io u s is the has been in both a he in and characters g ra tu ito u s. and second life one a h is the Quest move movement i s t h i ng i n common i s w ith but attem pt t o u n i f y fr a g m e n ts lo st, to their In to sheet In H ell in the d istre sse d and Tham es have and but no D e sp ite the p o ints both in novels a step to a ch ie v e that the M a r t h a a n d t h e man a r e l o o k i n g f o r relevant, Iris, here. Descent b e lo n g in g s. to m em o ries a c k n o w le d g e m e n t d istu rb e d , near C ity e n tire ly moved a d m itta n c e M artha need London total for w an d e rin g t h a t s o m e t im e s t h e p h y s i c a l The but m an’ s The in Iris, B rie fin g av a ilab le aspect, streets "W it h London. fo u nd a b o u t h im i s F irst, the of Four- Gated M artha’ s d e lic a te C u rio u sly , H o s p ita l so m ethi n g v i t a l . is lo v e The "e x c a v a t io n " of b u ried realizes: p re se n ta tio n d istre sse d common. she C p. 2 0 3 . w ith Central w hen on o n e o f In of liv e s. A nd m ovement so m ething last, and to a c h ie v e self- know ledge le a d s the to 93 a tt e m p t a to u n i f y fragm en ts d ifferen t d im e n sio n and to a c h ie v e s e lf- k n o w le d g e l e a d s - to the voyage in . Whereas M artha move i n s i d e a n d o u t s i d e t h e C o l d r i d g e h o u s e a n d w i l l a n d M a r k ’ s c o m p an y , m a in in te r e st is t h e man w i l l h is be c o n fin ed "r e - c o v e r y " and to w ill h a v e L y n d a 's to a p la c e w here th e the "d ls - c o v e r y " of h is id e n tity . B e sid e s B r ie fin g th is also pointed out Structure not w ith in ro les the and the and h i s ego; alie n a te d and of the n o v el, center of B rie fin g deadly of lo ss of h is Descent h is the hollo w ness he H ell" h is is found In m ystery, m o dern its e n e rg izin g as and those of but man rather s o c ia l l y co n d itio n ed com m ents of European, contact im a g e s "M o d e r n psyche of s p i r i t on ex p lo ra tio n CW estern, of - and f a i l u r e and v a stn e ss study "T h e m e B o llin g : of and s h a llo w s o f tw o a rticle to largeness W hen to In to A c c o r d in g the the b o t h im a g e s a r e a g a i n p r e s e n t : the r ic h n e s s , sug gestio n a t r u n c a t e d " 1. center the in for is in , B o llin g v ital h is voyage a tte n tio n largen ess. w ith in th© constant D o ug las the c o n s t r ic t io n s depths; w ith a B rie fin g shallo w n ess liv es d em an ds by in concern t h e m a t ic " T h e t h e m a t ic of m an’ s "in n e r p sy c h ic s p a c e "; "c iv ilize d "} w ith of h is own and m an ’ s deeper di m ensi o n s " . In The jo u rn e y have P o litic s in as a neglected. sin c e w ith o u t exp e rie n c e of Im p lie s the jo u rn ey is of m eans E x p e rie n c e , of re ac h in g E x p e rie n c e it the h e /s h e w ill jo u rn e y , movement and, exp e rie n c e d is as lik e R o n ald the v ita l liv e the places fo r the in one e m p h a size s that sterile the p atien t fu rth er the human m odern a co nseq uently, g o in g Laing b e in g s in d iv id u a l earth. w ill as The start, kn o w ledge: "in ", the g o in g "T h is back 96 through in t o and one’s the exp e rie n c e perhaps and personal even m in e ra ls" in te g ratio n start life , of a ll fu rth er To scattered of the back of and the b ein g s L ain g p ie c e s h ap p e n in g as soon as a n e c e ssity and m a n k in d , in to Cp . 1 2 6 3 . of in of a k n o w ledge task» of m an, beyond of Adam vegetables as to about the realizes d o in g and a n im als, w e ll t h e hum an b e i n g c o m p leting p r im a l of as through Lessin g , self that w ill there is so m ething i n fa v o r of v a l u a b l e a n d hum ane e x p e r i e n c e s . A fter psyche and Laln g’ s the the a tte n tio n Y. in h e a lin g the B o llin g ’ s lim ite d b e lie f through Doctor p re se n tin g the p atien t, them es the are in in Y. no vel: in n er and ric h the transparency, In the center human and it is b e in g necessary novel to of w ith nature co n sid er betw een the w ith p a tie n t and of the of the the stone n ew d i m e n s i o n a n d B r i e f i n g t h e r e has and sentences may n e c e ssity of s o c ie ty ; w ith the three re la tio n d im e n sio n s self of S i n b a d t h e s a i l o r man. T h e b l i n d l e a d i n g t h e b l i n d . Around and around and around a n d a r o u n d a n d a r o u n d a n d . . . Cp . 18- 93 first, realities on alon g of ric h n e ss You g i v e l e c t u r e s , d o y o u ? W hat s o r t l e c t u r e s ? W hat d o y o u l e c t u r e a b o u t ? in tim a te the in te n sely in d iv id u a l, L essin g ’ s and e s p e c i a l l y of the lim ite d in , in P a tie n t. d ia lo g u e , of the the fe w day s o f c o n fin e m e n t: D o c to r T h is on In te g ratio n voyage d ia lo g u e after w orld comment the h elp c ity stand of psyche then, of uttered the in fo r by the voyage order to the basic through o u tw it t h e i m p o r t a n c e o f w o r k in g som e s y m b o ls : and the upward s p i r a l to be a co n stan t the Crystal m a n d a la w ith its movem ent. a tte n tio n on t h e p art 97 of the reader c irc u la r end i t to the structure of the and go back to the b e g in n in g around" is present s w a llo w in g its re p e titiv e b e h a v io r helps in tail" le ft- tu rn in g of 'd e s t r u c t i v e n e s s '" the voyage in . m a n ife s te d in re la tio n sh ip , liv e d is c ircles, the In in that of a k in d break e x p e rie n c e of work to there is alw ay s e x p e rie n c e th is and d isc u ss io n the and that - t h e fo r m the p a tie n t in so c ie ty a re p e titiv e is so work the to of know. is s e ld o m on som e abandonm ent in w hether a human b e i n g c a n r e t a i n if happens. sentences c o n fin e d By fo c u s in g I Lessing p sy ch o th erap eutic w ant to still a m en tal on sh o w asks re latio n sh ip fo rm u la o f w ord to fra g m e n ta tio n the fo r the to . show My my the after q u e stio n , th e kn o w ledge h e /s h e a nd at the on the movement w ill in teg rate, the voyage i n h o sp ital other w h ic h is o u ts id e . c irc le s that to C onseq uently, B rie fin g w h olen ess o f th e i n d i v i d u a l of a tt e m p t is The the c irc le , life and s t e r i l e that through and im p lic a tio n s of fr a g m e n ta tio n to snake b e h a v io r its we and v ic io u s th is w ith as "t h e the the around a b o u t t h e book need The is and breakthrough B rie fin g to It soon lik e In in sip id gotten three in as and how ever, voyage life . as "A r o u n d sp ira l the who it B e sid e s one. a c h ie v e m e n t o f has w ell o p inio n The character c irc le . exp ression s as provokes a sc e n sio n understand, lo n g - the c o n tra c tin g tireso m e L e s s i n g 's o b jective a or the understand in stitu tio n s. represented another to C p. 1 4 7 3 in d iv id u a ls a of - we to c h a r a c t e r i z e B o l l i n g 's "t h e of book m e a n in g f u l of of in to r e p e titiv e n e ss is elem en ts a v o id the t im e the p a tie n t’ s v ital, in but the re p e titiv e the treatm ent. "s a ilo r " has, in B rie fin g a s ig n ific a n t 98 resp o n sib ility attitu d es In w hat to stand fo r . to re a d another stands a here, fo r sense doctor. n am eless false Y. Y e s t e r d a y i t was e i t h e r , y o u know. We a r e a l l D o c to r I am not. I am h o s p i t a l . C p. 14-52) Y. more than a and ness w ith the r e m a in s of strong so is In fa c t , consequence, are all as among lo n g s a ilo r s ", r o u t e and a goal and "I" of w ith me? You c a n 't doctor a w ay ness "I" end. in is in of as w h ic h the the to to th e p a t ie n t absurd in The h o sp ita l staff, for by to the doctor prove is that who s e e m they tend hum an who a to to l i v e b e in g s. b e lie v e blu rred r e la tio n sh ip s seem s It in do not a llo w growth but other are th is life . claim ed among i n d i v i d u a l s in d iv id u a ls B rie fin g , be and p o in t s ness, T h is by l i t t l e , R ec o g n itio n by s o c ie t y o f t h i s rare. you t e l l a by b e in g se p a rate d little necessary t h e y c a n ’ t b e g i v e n a nam e a n d a n i d e n t i t y . Id e n titie s, h o s p ita l the present sh a rin g in d iv id u a ls the the sense until id e n tity th eir than Is and sailo rs. p ro fe ssio n rather k in d s o f cocoons w h ic h , is it Jason. P atien t. "w e " A lon g im p o rtan t. nam e? W i l l D o c to r Y. better fo llo w and t h e p a t ie n t : Jonah. is sense of sim p ly W h a t ’ s your to a f e e l i n g o f e q u a l i t y among hum an b e i n g s of end Y. P a tie n t. be self- assured. the d ire c tio n s To u n d e rs ta n d t h i s d i a l o g u e b y D o c to r Do c tor S ailo r, concerns to are in Doctor they is are concerns h ealth y . Y. , a They are what not As "W e lik e a the voyage in . situ a tio n in stan ce, of fa lse id e n titie s wants to r e c o g n iz e the p a t i e n t ’ s nam e w i t h o u t r e a l i z i n g sailor m an" le ad in g the has the h elp have b lin d ". of w ith o u t its ch ildren, sle e p in e ss d isc u sse d the letters C harles co nseq uently, not a everybody. Can letter a when of L ik e due not the part to In how ever, kno w process it is a be through d u rin g carefu lly A lso , lecture e n th u sia stic "E d u c a t io n he has she w o rd s. of th is - children m ust be of e d u c a tio n " C p. 1522). of among general p eo p le and b r o u g h t true now c a l l e d he i s of C lassic s, that a ffects id e n tity are by h is p ro fe ssio n a lize d w o r ld is and, he is alm o st part of w orth r e s p e c t i n g . yeast? Cp. 495 the h o sp ita l. regarded, is part fo r of a lectures Th e p r e s e n c e o f she knows that T h e a tm o s p h e r e s e t t l e d b y W a t k in s is one of p o ssib ilitie s o n ly c u rio u sity state of t h e c a p a c i t y t o to u c h s e n s i b i l i t i e s attends rec o g n itio n m eans d o es no t to provoke and to e n la r g e p eo p le ’ s c u r io u s it y th e sound of h is the aspects e d u c atio n the p a tie n t, a w it h d eta iled who a t t e n d s one o f h i s th is about th e w orld. h is a unearthes the p atien t b lin d d isc o v e re d Th e s t a f f the of of c o n f in e m e n t i n W a t k in s h a s a pow er w ell. b lin d n ess som e t im e b e f o r e h i s must search lik e the the w r i t e n b y R o sem a ry B a i n e s , character the of starts r e la tio n sh ip to w orld. is staff th em es is w o r ld name the t h e r a p is t s , and d u r in g t h is yeast "T h e arch eo log y, W a tk in s , R e c o g n itio n , th e voyage i n that addressed person th is a n d m odern man a s fr a g m e n t e d sp e c ia l "S in b a d the the d e h u m a n iz e d w ife to the doctors. P rofesso r in own c o n d i t i o n . p atien t’ s n o tic in g fallacy and in the b lin d n ess the name photographs» m odern c i v i l i z a t i o n p erc e iv e a W hen some in v e s t ig a tio n of to th eir R o sem a ry that fed, B ain es the m ust a liv e n e ss, a w a k e n in g , th r o u g h a liv e ly alert be kept e x p erien c es s im p le id e a : a liv e . the fearless That is fe e lin g of 100 b e in g "s t u n g years. trap B efo re had B aines knows In ’ p riso n she the b e in g " ’ the w orld of b e c o m in g of U n iv e rsity cam pus and T h is a th is q u a lity in w hat one w is h of to letter is is a tow ards lectures and th eir w ay of id e a s the after it, cu riou s b lin d so of rin g in g to She W atk in s c u r r e n t ", m eets both about stim u la tin g "p o w e r f u l Larson has the C harles in the k in sh ip " and w o r ld "t h e already F red erick met R o sem a ry they for as F red erick b r o t h e r - in - l a w , that flash h a p p e n s som e w ee k s it th is that yeast. “ Another v ib ratin g h im for B efo re also m a tc h in g , and is spread the Cp. 1 5 4 ) . im p o r t a n t h is and e x p la in s h ig h siste r feels and fa nta stic of B aines fo rgo tten dow n. t u n e " C p. 1 5 4 ) "t h e her had come alert le a d in g in I lectur® r e m a in transparent" frie n d But th is b lin d w a v e l e n g t h '" , had through t h is Rosem ary a have the C ...) le c tu re . fa m ilia r W a t k in s to o f su b sta n c e s b e in g a fter C p. 1 5 6 ) . D u ring has th in gs shades' can be d isc o v e re d re c o g n itio n Larson, rem em bered C p. 1 5 3 ) . that th is together, "I those shut" m ore t h i n g s of a w a k e ": liv e the in . actual m e e t in g . R o se m a ry s t a m m e rin g and c iv iliza tio n analy zes B aines is cu riou s aw areness in B ritain The 1969 about Ro sem ary a n d F r e d e r i c k , who s t a r t is struck "...a l l w eather, events the h u n t " C p .1 5 9 ) . are craft is equ ally of and c o n sid e rin g d isc u ssio n an a r c h a e o l o g is t , in re la tio n sh ip She w rites about the sc ie n c e th in g s these and fa irie s, w h e th e r a w itc h es, that starts w ar, a show, m a g ic a l w it h Larson, new s i s fa sh io n about a rtifa c ts p o ints b y t h e way t h e im p o r t a n t betw een life . m e e t in g f r e q u e n t l y . p ia n t- g ro w in g , The b e l ie f the W a tk in s' in c iv iliza tio n s arch aeo lo gy . in about who presented: gam e, a the p o lice p lan ts and anim als the is, cu rio u sly, im p o r t a n t A frican life d isc o v e ry trib e , centre on the years the flo o d in g Earth" m em bers, the la ck betw een the dependence c iv iliza tio n w h ile Larson "N o t towards life in in e v ita b le . th is d u rin g lead s lectures happen. A fter a v isit to he resp o n sib ility towards its a Larson w ay C p .1653 that the the riv e r co n clu des so c ie ty ’ s to that ju d g e the a g a in . A ll sim p le reason: has also of been a p p ea rin g . the three By h erself one w ho , he and in lik e understand m e n t io n s p r o b le m in a Larson th e m , are and that the referred the no can sam e do not B aines C p .1613 other letter: last A can be is She that lo n g. try in g feels starts a very fo r to present is its un ite that W atk in s Now i t about s ta m m e r in g fo u nd is so recent fo r that not sin c e q u estio n W atk in s peo p le. v ib ra tio n . th e b e g in n in g of B a i n e s ’ does S t a m m e r in g lecture, " ’ w avelength ’ ". stim u la te the to reason e v ery th in g , th is o ld trib e s t a m m e r in g a ctiv ities. sam e a But t h is as w e ll, doubts assu m p tio n s. w akefu lness" has h is h abitu al d u rin g common extra p ro fe ssio n , provokes s u b je c ts m e n t io n in g lik e h is a r c h a e o lo g ic a l these p eo p le "c o n d it io n how ever, of a w ith starts co n v e rsa tio n cu rio u sly , a g a in he strik e c o m p a r is o n and p o ssessio ns thin g: norm al itT the and cu riou s in But, is Turkey, v alid ity a but the su n , by about le a v in g h is appear. t im e to alth o ug h He t h i n k s many d o u b t s the h im trib e ’ s riv e r, c a n n o t b e j u d g e d b y t h e p a t t e r n im p o s e d b y a r c h a e o l o g y . c o n clu sio n an th e w in d s, such m a c h in e s the But stu d y in g d id n eig h b o u rs" regulated a rtifa c ts, of s o c ie ty . Is o n ly sub sid en ce "H arm o n y * a tten tio n beco m e te c h n o lo g ic a l around th e s e a s o n s , t r i b e 's on and a g g re ssio n arch aelo g ist' s a befo rehand: C p .1 6 9 3 . of in happens ten was h i g h l y r i t u a l i z e d moon, constant the in can be easier to 102 . . . i n w r i t i n g t o you* t h i s a c t o f s i t t i n g dow n t o p u t w o rd s t o g e t h e r , i n t h e h o p e t h a t t h e w o rd s w il l be a s s t r o n g a s t h o s e u se d by you th a t n i g h t , i t i s l i k e t h e s p r e a d i n g o f a y e a s t or som e s o r t o f c h e m ic a l t h a t h a s s t a r t e d w o r k i n g i n o n e p l a c e , a n d t h e n moved o u t , f e e d i n g a n d i n c i t i n g , then c u rv e d back a g a in t o w here i t beg an . T h is l e t t e r i s l i k e a snake sw a llo w in g i t s t a l l . C p .1473 In rep ly ing not r e c o g n ize in the that h er in London is reveals in many unfo rtu nately letter, so m eth ing conference repeated h is to gen eral. p laces. no t im e short and he is character p erfo rm ance. W atk in s, th a t he i s "y e a s t". a in d iffe r e n c e b eh av io r and the but The s t a t e it of of sh o w n stands clearly m any sle e p in e ss, as for it C la ssic s, nam e h is to the and pro blem , drug see th eir o ffers that n ig h ts relief thousands p r o b le m s are fr o m of the p eo p le fin d kno w in fr o m of the by to h is and events. Most no to w ay so do m inates who c a n a r e num bed a v o id the th is n ig h tly im p o rtan t awaken to g e n e ra tio n . c o n d itio n , To th is ch ild n o vel, sleep . p ills the B rie fin g , growth b eh av io r even d a ily h is general In called regu lated of p eo p le. S e n sib ilitie s have not c h a ra c te rize s not s e e and p e r c e iv e an i n e v i t a b l e f a l l . p eo p le w ith q u e stio n c o r re c tly . th eir many in then, share does t h o u s a n d s o f p e o p l e who a r e n o t a w a r e o f and but stay b e in g s C harles* is u su ally letter, not relatio n sh ip s through is and suppose s o " C p .1 4 9 3 . hum an of words by T h is does and th e s ig n if i c a n c e o f a yeast? I other h is sin c e d isp o sitio n lectures e x p e r ie n c e is th e m busy. p rofessor is in Larson m eet u n re c o g n ize d towards ch a rac te ristic adult, of to W a tk in s, h a s " said B a in e s h a s an sw e re d her "C a n a y e a s t n o t kn o w i t state present he u sually of C h arles knows and h is the is W hat He has audience the contents The sp e c ia l he C harles* how ever, is d u rin g to the 103 day. S le e p in e ss b lin d n ess and the app eals and s o c ie ty , Is a w h o se of general results sleep later sin c e on, state w ill the are be that Is a sso c ia ted c a ta stro p h ic . b e g in n in g of resp o n sible h is for C harles life . h is The to feels m other u nco n s c io u sn e ss a n d d e p e n d e n c e on p i l l s . C harles W a tk in s' c o n fro n tatio n betw een a liv e , e n e rg e tic sleep. Her sleep. and character of T h e k e y w ord le arn in g C p .1 2 8 D . d isc o v er to the is be There in the m other p ercep tive d isco u rse T h e p r o b le m , ch ildh o o d is then, ch ild a "b e g o o d ": good. I 'm is h im se lf. whereas the claim : p a ssitiv y " I 'm o ff good so m ething , t h e d a rk c h a ra c te r ize d the in v e n tiv e , the a and constant is and is to boy to be m other w a n ts h im to a good I the school and the m o th er. now a n d am q u i e t that boy and im a g in a r y dem an ded b y how ever, territo ry of w ants cu riou s now, a He be th eir by and boy I 'm good" w ants to sleep: B u t back i n t h e d a r k i n t h e d e e p o f my m in d i s w h e r e I know t h e do o r i s , back or f o r w a r d , u p or down, beyond the Boom, shush, the eternally b o o m in g , t h e p u l s e , t h e b e a t , t h e o n e a n d t w o , t h e o n e a n d t w o , t h r o u g h t h e r e , who know s w h i c h or w h e r e - I d o , I know . I rem em ber. D o I rem em ber? Yes. I rem em ber. I m ust rem em ber. There. W here? C p. 1 2 8 5 But the m other fin d s a p re sc rib e d by the doctor. are k ille d dead w ith p i l l s . so lu tio n "T h e r e g u la t e d and g o o d " C p .1 2 8 } . w h ic h fu n c tio n s h im t o b e norm al Later on, as a fo r s m a ll h is days But he s le e p s T h e m other m ic r o c o s m of restlessn ess: flic k er w ell, he is stan d s fo r s o c ie ty at and the p ills n ig h ts h e a lt h y and an i n s t i t u t i o n large. Both expect and c u re d . the r e la tio n s h ip of the fa m ily . is rep laced by 104 s o c i e t y 's lim ited h o sp ita ls, “ D o c to r w ith co n d itio n s. c o n su ltin g thousands o f peo p le s tre tc h g i v e me p i l l s W atk in s. n um bness In to He is reality . and in m any th eir h a n d s a n d dem an d t o make me s l e e p " C p . 1 3 0 3 . T h e s am e h a p p e n s also In the the out room s v ic tim voyage of in o f t h e w o r l d o u t s i d e w hen h e c l a i m s a he fo r so c ie ty reproduces h is that p refers the horrors drugs: ... g i v e me now e v e r y t h i n g I h a d w hen I w as a baby » g i v e me w hat you t r a i n e d me t o n e e d b e f o r e I e v e n t a l k e d or w a l k e d , g i v e me a n y t h i n g y o u l i k e b u t l e t me S L E E P f o r i n t h e d a r k w h e r e t h e d oo r o n c e w as C b u t i s i t s t i l l 73 i s t h e o n l y p l a c e I can t o l e r a t e b e in g a l i v e at a l l . I never le a r n e d t o l i v e a w a k e . I was t r a i n e d f o r s l e e p . O h , l e t me s l e e p a n d s l e e p my l i f e a w a y . C p. 1 2 9 3 The treatm ent e le m e n t of death usu ally" fin d s and s t e r i l e w ith in and drugs its w h ic h d u rin g the c o m p o sitio n . c a lm s h im is co n fin e m e n t The door rep laced by also that a has an W atk in s m ore obscure p lace: Sfahhhh, h u s h , S L E E P a n d i n s l i d e s t h e n e e d l e d e e p a n d dow n I g o i n t o t h e c o l d b l a c k d a r k d e p t h w h e r e t h e s e a f l o o r i s a n e a r t h o f m in u t e s k e l e t o n s . . . d e a d p l a n t s , n e w e a r t h f o r g r o w i n g . B u t n o t m e, I d o n ’ t g r o w , I d o n 't s p r o u t . I l o l l l i k e a c o r p s e or a d r o w n e d k i t t e n , my h e a d r o l l i n g a s I f l o a t and b lack w ashes o v er m e, dark and heavy. C p. 1 3 0- 1 3 T h is deadly p la c e , voyage, of represents human adulth o o d ste rility its end. b e in g s the is For in o p p o sitio n the by the of the consequences of In stitu tio n a lize d tendency part to the p atien t is to k ill treatm ent it is p ro m ises the From a ctiv ity the d iffic u lt the d e h u m a n iz e d n o rm s. sin c e of to and treatm ent child h o o d grow th. b eg in n in g a v o id sailo r’s and the to So, is at v ic io u s 103 c ir c le of re p e titio n The c irc le a ss o c ia te d The to R o sem a ry to and m ovem ent, "s n a k e uses around e x p a n sio n a task part the voyage and in sa ilo r ’ s d iffic u ltie s of fa m ily and fa m ily a u dien ce. fo r he There is c o n fin e m e n t the among M a ry A nn M other d iv isio n is not a lso fo r These is present. the the can alw ays voyage. im a g e that the best "A r o u n d shows not v ic io u s and that be the absent circ le w ill to be therefo re be u n d e rsta n d in g state hard hum an due to the betw een in in to of the S in g le to n h is but "n o r m a l" not At one of the the he and t im e lectures w ith n ig h tly are h is drug. fin d s o u tsid e : p atien t reflect, sterile the A w ith sam e contact p ills, the w o rk . su ffic ie n tly H is keep doctors h is o rd in ary l i f e is p r o b le m s to relatio n sh ip uroboros* fa cets: t h e G r e a t M other. The of in to w ords, refer h is overw ork. w ith sam e in W atk in s b e in g s . enough m a tter m e a n in g facts C harles present as the de v o u rin g , a in re p re ssio n k in d the S in g le to n , as a is is n o vel. C p. 1 9 ) and lead works u n d e rsta n d in g search peo p le. He reproduces the presen ce o f Great w ith presence is the exp ressio n s h elp that students h is W atk in s, power. a n d a c c o m p l is h m e n t s . do h is two w ill th in gs to but the d i f f i c u l t in and co lleagu es. lack s b rillia n t, H is have its the co n tra c tio n p erfo rm ed d e s t r u c t i v e b e h a v io r resp o n sib le h is the be t a il", around" the and of to in novel aspects its letter and d e stru c tiv e the c re ativ e changes and to uroboros k in d o f her around The c o n fin e m e n t and in sw a llo w in g in and w ith i t s im a g e these is M ost strong dangerous broken. of present illu s tra te the w hen t h e r e a the B aines exam p le around is the uroboros, alw ay s C ity b e in g and where a sso c ia te s the no th is V eld, presents the re sp o n sib ility or state to of b e in g 106 th e u n c o n sc io u s and to th e A f r i c a n v eld in L e s s in g ’ s sto ries. She says: T h i s i s t h e p a r a d i s e o f c h i l d h o o d a n d o f t h e human psyche befo re the ego dev elo p ed, and man w as s e p a r a t e d fr o m c r e a t i o n . . . H o w e v e r , t h e e s s e n c e o f th is p arad ise is rep e titio n ; as lo n g as u n c o n s c io u sn e s s co n tin ues C in a race or an i n d i v i d u a l 3 , t h e n t h e u r o b o r o s t a k e s o n i t s m ore s i n i s t e r m e a n in g a s t h e d e v o u r i n g m o t h e r . . . " C83 The d e v o u rin g of a w h o le m other in the to "in s t in c t r e a lm . But the second the type of of has o b stin ate attem pt uroboros c re ativ e movement i n to th is m in d the that the W a t k in s "T h e m " w ith not of b e h av io r, in the u n c o n sc io u s natural then, is cy cles th is patterns part w orld o u t s id e of and the the v eld tim e , of but b e h av io r" uroboros w h ic h a that prevents h im true id e n tity . d u r in g the to be part voyage of the n ew of in h is endeavour: to "O u r c irc le b e g i n n i n g ... of a the e v o lu tio n ’ " Crystal fo llo w th is eleven e x p la in it is d isc the — the S in g le to n , ev o lu tio n " has w ill in another a cc o rd in g sp iral steps of d e stru c tiv e upward s p i r a l and the a v ic tim of voyage now o n C h a r l e s ' also m a n k in d i s of "u p w a r d in S in g le to n th e contem porary c i t y , that, im p u lse C p. 1 9 3 part w ith W a tk in s events the a d iffe re n c e nature. is c o m p a r is o n D e s tru c tiv e Many reason" of e v ery th in g in fr o m r e m e m b e r in g h i s of no re p la y in g encap sulates in d iv id u a lity : re p e titio n rep etitio n , constant C p .193. w ith city c itize n s no c y clical refers - "A s allow s sailo r’ s other fa cet s y m b o lize s " 't h e in itia l, rotatory C p .1 9 3 . W ith im p o r t a n t to as regard keep d e stin a tio n . in From d ire c tio n . c o m p a n io n s exp ect a t i ons are had engaged been in for m e e t in g a id , for e x p la n a tio n , ...t h e fo r w aitin g m in d s as lig h t w a ll and d iffe re n t C harles, to m eet as in sound the the is o f our s e l v e s w ith Them h a d ocean" th eir b o d ie s alon e. e le m e n t H is whereas He h a s not d im e n s io n o f W hen and frie n d s a our appears, betw een d is a p p e a r a n c e le a v e s have the d isc in c o n flic t been is „ l e f t ^ l n left thoughts. c irc u it the a But i t s he yet a n d o f our beco m e Cp. 2 2 ) . establish ed. cap tain, to rot. a d iffe re n t up In v a d e substances thi s - d i f f ere n t sta rtin g a h eig h ten in g a absorbed sh ip re p e titiv e that movem ent by is fo r sp a c e and u n d e rsta n d in g : For a l l t h e s e c e n t u r i e s I h a d b e e n s a i l i n g a r o u n d a n d a r o u n d a n d a r o u n d a n d a r o u n d a n d a r o u n d f o r no o t h e r r e a s o n t h a n t h a t o n e d a y I w o u ld m eet Th em , a n d now a t l a s t we h a d i n d e e d i n h a b i t e d t h e sam e s p a c e o f a i r , b u t I h a d b e e n l e f t b e h i n d . C p. 2 3 ) O n l y t h e n e x t e v e n t s on t h e the m y s te r ie s o f The is la n d p erc e iv e s, been at born" ro o fless flo o rs beco m es C p .4 0 ). in and l i g h t the c ity and w ater has to do i n c irc le is and p u l l in g revealed is a in the center its sailo r’s that by in a of its in v isib le p erfect of through fo rm s, by c le arin g W hen w ith workmen But c le a rin g of d islik e c o m p o sitlo n , who e x p la in "I he what has not he on m a in tain is ha yet fin d s realizes a the that gardens so m ething he had t o p r e p a r e t h i s a ll the lo o se a l s o know s t h a t the next fu ll the and m o saics there away C harles and th en w a it for the or the sto ne c it y : square, w ill te rritiry p aradise. order. out the g r a s s " C p .5 4 ) . th e center n ew "h o s t ilit y in h a b its substances la n d o f an is l a n d and th e c o m p a n io n ’ s d is a p p e a r a n c e . p erfe c tio n in h ab ited in the He chan n els ly in g to clear the C r y s t a l ’ s first, c ity "s a fe " center has moon. to d irt he has W hat i s do w ith 108 u n iversal fo rces: "p a t t e r n s patterns, that suggested correspondence w ith the g lo w e d in it, flo w ers and m ovem ents of th in ning m o o n l ig h t moon and her cycles co uld not take my th o u g h ts, fr o m h e r her w ild p atternin g "I earth in full moon that he and can m ooncrazed" fo r not resp o n sib le has to never liv e , w hat I I fo r the He i s approaches th eir one, the sky. voyager as v isit of c o n d itio n : "I the the a ir, death of the th eir Even in a in the d iffe re n t she d iz z ie d the d isc was sailo r is The w ay: around fo r the absorbs co n fro n ted the next h im m oonstruck. g rie f, and t h e p r e s e n c e o f e n e m ie s . he a to The oh, be be, sud den ly beast isla n d . m ust c ity I no, aw are no, a lie n the fe e lin g no, around" C p .605. b eco m es among cannot made n o tic es I so was w ith an of h im of and by a stra n g e fe a s t in it W o m e n 's three around h im ; th eir and d e stin y fo r a feasts, he The w here tim e . o versleeps "la u g h e d stretched C p .6 3 5 . p artic ip a te they faces, a Because and is he m isse s and m ouths, bloody baby w h ic h the it, I no, a that he h im : don’ t w ish I have done and around and sudden e v e ry th in g n ig h t is the fo re st are is upsets no, the he a v a ria tio n s and and tric k lin g feasts ran in p artic ip a te d C r y s t a l 's blood w h ic h change new a n d w hen exu lted, m urdered has that g u ilt w hat no, B u t w hen cattle, stand A ll to of attracted greet ch in s" realized w an t w hat around terror. sm eared in to do not - the sin g le on know such changes he the and d a n c e " p . . 5 7 3 .. „ W a i t i n g M e a n w h ile never blood am a n d around and gardens c h a n g e s t h e a t m o s p h e r e on t h e i s l a n d . draw n e v il "1 *1 1 affect a g e o m e tric a l lo o m e d up m i l k i l y . . . " C p . 5 5 3 . p ro bable a v o id W atk in s h as sm ells a lso the C p .5 7 3 . ep iso d e th at he the patterns co n tin uo u s the h is of a w as o ff sons v o y a g e r 's tw ice in such descent. In th is 109 co n fu sio n of fe e lin g s r e latio n sh ip betw een houses: they c ity of "... w h ic h had in te n sity through fo u nd its departure the "... friv o lity , an a sort appears in the of a At after W a t k i n s 's the m onkeys, both the races and too: a rr iv a l the it shot and had C p .7 0 5 . A and in it C p .6 9 3 . silly after feasts and servants. lik e a the of a of lo o k g ig g lin g , th in g m o nkeys. W ith t o him . Now , of k illin g th eir frie n d C ry stal’ s betw een rat- dogs, The m ost the is is descent, stu p id m em bers. and The robs circ le a k in d o f d e p o s i t o f c o r p s e s and t h e w ater red blo o d. W atk in s im p o ssib le because o f w ants to t h e r a t- d o g s * clean the presence. the the m asters, square is w ith and aspect te rro rizin g them a w h irl after s ile n t n ew the through had a w as that But It and it frig h te n in g gone. a is ., centre; p lace, C ...D the c it y of b attles fr o m to a reveals Crystal restin g silen ce rat- dogs c ity a t m o s p h e r e becom es e v i d e n t . bloody beco m es a f i e l d the reveals drunkenness city the s u b s t a n c e s ..." coarseness" them t h e c h a n g e i n on m o r n in g peace w here its c laim s fin e of in w a rd s, core, the its in fa n tilism , turned its own center c irc le , la id C r y s t a l 's c ity : the were w h ic h w ith the c ity and the v io le n tly w ith in c han n els center but it the are is Then the w h ite b ir d appear s . W it h an im als in p o rp o ise to the c ity , the e xc e p tio n the voyage that saves is la n d , tw o and p o llu tio n a n i m a l 's th is of in is W atk in s b en ig n w h ite as and alw ays fro m the leo p ards b ird , and d e s t r u c t io n territo ry rat- dogs m onkeys, p eacefu l rotten that w h ic h has the presence of and helpfu l. A raft a nd b rin g s h im s h o w h im the way the p re v io u sly p e r p e t r a t e d b y h u m a n ity , co o perative. When the w h ite all to shown h im sig n a l the b ird land s on 110 the center o c c u p y in g of the c ity , C harles’ the c e n te r, th is p lace. and C h a rles tim e, M o n key s starts it and b a n ish e s rat- dogs the c le a n in g of those leav e the w ho are o b e d ie n tly c ircle w ith in the square. In not B rie fin g , be tim e, the n eglected. W atk in s center m eans p o ssib le to minim um o f the the related c irc le , the sac re d , "T h e m " and w ants of p ersp ec tiv e , the The The m andala, to reorder earth, other the d iv in e . of in the m oon’ s to can v isio n e xp erien c e the v is u a l, p lastic w ith in body stands and m a n d a la exp ressio n of - and n o n - sp atial of and s y m b o ls of a F irst, that has to cardinal the other w a it in g fo r sp ite of h is horror. From m eans o v e r c o m in g for t h e sym bol the it related W atk in s i s W atk in s of yantra, fo r of e s p e c ia lly a fter is of the in to m andala, is and first a of w h ic h can order te rre stria l, and as the c lean in g . th is the fe a s ts the of co sm o s. corresponds t h e s t r u c t u r e and f u n c t io n o f i t : d iv e rsity p ristin e , the study dim e n sio n seen situ atio n , w ith is and in c ite h im se lf k in d W atk in s’ C harles be lik e a the another of is hand, d isg u st cycles C harles’ about the the m a n d a la exp la n a tio n even b eh in d for that resto rin g the structure the of as Through and a s t a t e o f d is o r d e r , fo rest. C harles’ and ascend ev il, the C irlo t im p e r a tiv e streets structure ric h n e ss on an the to e v e ry th in g th at fo r c o n flic ts T h is elem ents, to on is im p o r t a n c e e m b l e m "4 . w orld, kn o w ledge the c ity . or see the The c le a n in g w a lk in g o rg an iza tio n seasons, p o in ts. of Juan- Eduardo the s q u are i s a W h ile the by "in s t r u m e n t , task understands of e xp la in e d is the w ork, h is In to "It to o . attem pt B riefin g , C i r i o t 's is, then, the s t r u g g le to ach ie v e order the lo n g in g n o n- tem poral to be reu n ited ’ Centre’ , in as - w ith it is Ill co nceived in W atk in s i s all h is life in In s id e When t h e f u l l the Crystal moon c o m e s , he w ill understand t h e c i t y and t h e d im e n sio n o f h is task the center. The m a tter crystal and cry stal’s the is, sp irit state most m a tter can trad itio ns” . ready to ascend. t h e m e a n in g o f in 3 s y m b o l ic - m eet. of see through n eith er hardness W a t k in s is W atk in s’ substance and but it it. As nor the can be b e a u tifu l is as an if where exp la in ed it, d id of nor in a d e fin e s not s u f f e r i n g 4*. sw irling dust and le a v e s fr o m a sc e n sio n to th is a tm o s p h e r e changes, body and h is v isio n of In the "o n e of one if o ffers the novel, around" "a s a C p .8 8 D . co nseq uently, w orld the because m ovem ent, yards of - o p p o site s: co n tem p la tio n , in h is as of exist, gathers of o p p o site s because c o n ju n c tio n s it o b jec t by place w h ic h C i r l o t re sista n c e "g a t h e r e d " d u s t - d e v il T h is transparency, e ffe c tiv e 'e x i s t s * , sy m b o lic a lly , o u tsid e the the C rystal. H ea v in ess and lig h tn e ss w h ile o b se rv in g the c ities t h a t now h e i s c ity are elem en ts fr o m above. that They W atk in s d isco v ers d iffe re n tia te tw o a b le to p erc e iv e : a s my own b o d y w as now a s h a p e i n 1i g h t, though not as f 1 ne and hi gh a 1i ght as the sub stance of the Crystal i t s e l f , s o t o o w as t h e c i t y : i t w as a s i f t h e c i t y o f s t o n e a n d c l a y h a d d i s s o l v e d , l e a v i n g a g h o s t l y c i t y , made i n l i g h t , lik e , an illu m in a te d m is t that has shadows or echoes h eld in it. Yet the city that rose e v e r y w h e r e a b o u t me i n t h e sam e s h a p e o f t h e c i t y I k n e w s o w e ll w as t h i n n e r , more s p a r s e . Cp. 8 9 } W a t k in s sees and th a t i t that is there are im p o s s ib le for few er th is houses lig h t in th is pattern "g h o s t ly " to f i t in to c ity som e 112 b u ild in g s of the im p e rv io u sn e ss c itie s have substances. leads me, h is it ...t h i s w eigh t, the a part lik e th is of h is t h e w orld i n a of liv in g , and in the dev elo p m en t, its w as bred and h e av in e ss e ith e r and in n e r and outer heavy or lig h t co - existen ce of o p p o site s the and are a fear in to w ith it: understood too of my th is co m p ellin g " gro w ing in a the B u t now h e i s essence kneaded a sso c ia te d h is and c o m p u lsio n , p erc e iv e d on W a tk in s . in to fo rest a already g rie f d ra g g in g of w eig h t, has sorrow p u llin g "b lo o d y f e a s t s " part "It b reath in g So, co ld pressures my C p .9 0 ). the W atk in s its “extra th eir of "a w h ic h to d isc o v e ry . C ry stal, fee lin g s: was was n e c e ssity w ith to a personal m a n ifests due substance" spaces C p .9 2 ) , stone c it y , c ity p ercep tio n the n e c e ss ity " for th eir T h is In sid e of in their W a t k in s a fra id stone not a n c ie n t the race. fib re s, co ld, a th is C p .9 2 ). E v en b y h im a s b e in g cap acity to understand to tality : . . . my h a v i n g d r u n k b l o o d a n d e a t e n f l e s h w i t h t h e poor women h a d b e e n a d o o r , a k e y a n d a n o p e n i n g , b e c a u s e a l l s y m p a t h e t i c k n o w l e d g e m ust b e t h a t , i n t h i s s p i n o f f u s i o n l i k e a w eb w h o s e e v e r y s t r a n d i s l i n k e d a n d v i b r a t e s w i t h e v e r y o t h e r , t h e sw o o p of an eagle on a m ouse, the eag le’ s co ld e x u l t a t i o n a n d t h e m o u s e ’ s t e r r o r m ake a m atch i n nature, a n d t h i s h ar m o n y r u n s i n a s t r e n g t h e n e d p u l s e i n t h e i n n e r c h o r d o f w h ic h i t i s a p a r t . C p. 9 2 - 3 ) The in n er m atch in W a tk in s. of th is its e lf. and outer nature" The they m ovem ent, search fo r In c itie s the are stand the exam p les fo r the constant of C harles’ th is h arm o n y change b a la n c e and w ith o u t context of fu sio n ; now and lik e "a understood by dan cing are th em s t e r i l i t y w i l l voyage, it is im p o r t a n t part repeat to be 113 part of the th is outer "lo c k in g w o r ld of stone, Cp. 9 3 D . O ily task the u niv erse. in H a v in g m ovements through a among p ulses p erc e iv e d com m union the human b e i n g he w hat p ro fe ssio n a ls h is that r h y th m s fa m in e co lo urs in sta n c e , in d iv id u a ls. o v errid e s see sees W ars, T h is w ith lig h t" to by the by fo r m atters. and able lig h t. separate lig h t W a tk in s a c c o m p a n ie d of in o rd in ary be d is tin g u ish e d of is and p lanet, P ro fe ssio n s, the co lo urs among w ill co lo urs are lig h t. through than and are pattern flesh, the on e a r t h tones th e in n er leaf, of n atio n s of of kn o w ledge v iew and ch an ges a sso c ia tio n s rather th is good sound and d i f f e r e n t beats, together and and are The fact of by not w h o le creates d iffe r e n c e s a a nd fig h ts : th e r e i s no such t h in g as s o l d ie r s but o n ly S o l d i e r , and not c l e r k s but C l e r k , and G a rd e n e r , and Teacher. For, sin c e any category anywhere a l w a y s b e a t s on i t s own w a v e l e n g t h o f s o u n d / l i g h t , there co uld not be in d iv id u a l s in t h is n o u r is h in g w eb. T o g e t h e r t h e y fo r m e d o n e b e a t i n t h e g r e a t dance, one note in th e song. E v e r y w h e r e a n d on e v e r y l e v e l t h e l i t t l e i n d i v i d u a l s made u p w h o l e s , s t r u c k l i t t l e n o t e s , made t o n e s o f c o l o u r s . C p. 9 0 } B ut order so m eth ing and h arm o ny. p ro fe ssio n s and selfish - the b e in g s sp iral. The sense of "I" - is ness. to of the planet w h o len ess and W atk in s g iv e s p lace in te rp re ts a " b l o w or to the d istu rb e d reflected in its the s u b s t i t u t e d b y an i n d i v i d u a l i z e d T h is "I" ness, on th e ir r e s p o n s ib l e and c a t a s t r o p h ic and consequence o f happened "W e " n ess sense re sp o n sib le fo r human has the d e stru c tiv e change on k n o c k " C p. 1 0 3 D . the its turn, b e h av io r movement p lan et C harles' as is among of the b e in g q u estio n a "w h a t 114 sent us o ff C p .103} is centre, and away fr o m the sw eet s an ity of W e?" a n s w e r e d w i t h a movement b a c k w a r d s : I ’ m b e in g su c k ed back l i k e a m ite r e v o l v in g i n th e vortex of the bathw ater, eddy ing in to the m ill- ra c e , back, and th en C rash! T h e C o m e t, it com es h u r t l i n g o u t o f t h e d a r k o f s p a c e , g iv e s E arth a blo w to m i d r i f f . . . l e a v i n g E arth no lo n g e r c i r c l i n g san e and s te a d y . . . The a ir that had been the fo o d o f s a n e and l o v in g u n d e r s t a n d in g becam e a d e a d l y p o i s o n . . . C p. 1 0 3 - 4 3 W atk in s understands the u n b a la n c e and p e r c e iv e s in to now, the the w orld of terrib le that i t r e la tio n s, kn o w ledge that can is to consequences of t im e t o r e t u r n the change w orld m any c o s m ic fr o m t h e v o y a g e o u tsid e th in g s the sin c e in h is he has, p lace on the plan et: B u t m a n - w ise , m i c r o b e - w is e , I am b e f o r e t h e C r a s h a n d i n a co o l s w e e t l o v i n g a i r th a t r in g s w ith h a r m o n y , I S , y e s , a n d h e r e am I , v o y a g e r , O d y s s e u s b o u n d f o r home a t l a s t , t h e s e e k e r i n hom e w a t e r s , s p i t e f u l , N eptune o u tw it t e d and J u p i t e r ’ s daughter my f r i e n d a n d g u i d e . C p . 1 0 4 } W atk in s’ m o v em e n ts, sam eness and r e p e t i t i o n and personal chance of at "B o u n d to h is p ercep tio n and how ever, part of a greater is human w i l l of the Structure kn o w ledge to d e v e lo p i t . cre ativ e in n o vel’ s structure as in v o lv e the return not fo r home a t o rd in a r y of th in gs. la s t ", life The he w ill w ith to In b e in g h is by a rtic le , a d e stru c tiv e a d iffe re n t c re ativ e m ov em en t, dim e n sio n and in v o l v e s m e n t io n e d have a T h e c r e a t i v e movem ent i s sp iral, B r ie fin g ". p oint, but tow ards t h e d ev elo pm en t o f c r e a t i v i t y d isc o v e ry . re tu rn in g th is B o llin g B o llin g sp ira l. not o n ly the c h a ra c te ristic in "T h e m e and in te rp re ts the But he does not 115 d isc u ss space. fu ll len gth The c r e a tiv e sp ira l the t im e the p lan ets' Ju p iter he and M inerv a e m p h a size s forget that trav eller’ s and W e, W atk in s the p rev ail has h is lik e task are it ’s turn, true the not a id e n tity m issio n task on on the so that else. on the There o n ly h arm o n y , i t ’s of and F red erick Larson T h eir a w a k e n in g w ill be lik e on t h e a w ill exactly the the p eo p le p lanet. w ill a lso p lanet, in C harles He has lo o k ed for co m p an y is p ro v id e s so co n fused sta b ility . reader fo r sh all how ever, is When who and fr o m and C p .1 1 1 - 2 ). p an ic in at but and in W a tk in s on t h e p l a n e t to keep go dly a liv e B aines r e a lm . te rrify in g : h is “ You rescuer, Cp. 1 2 4 ) . the B aines’ that that p eo p le cease. th is e n lig h te n e d we d i s c o v e r Earth r e sp o n sib ility terror" in on Rosem ary be drowns fo u n d no bad t h e c o m m u n it y , that w ill re v e la tio n that the learns awaken t o re m e m b er , e m issa rie s your on a d iffic u lt shall ev id e n c e person the "...d o n ’ t liv e be born and l i v e good c o n fin em en t. but he have In pattern, u p ..." and passage, sp iral who The re p e titio n and w ill stru ggle state a re la tio n sh ip in b lin d d r o w n in g you th is in flu en ce C o n sc io u sn e s s some are In at and w here a c o n fe re n c e i s som e the p lan et. is unbalance c re a tiv e the planet: He o n ly d iv in ity . them Earth. t o w in i t s by J u p it e r c o s m ic ev e ry th in g s p i r a l l i n g b ra in p rin te d everyone v io le n tly of B rie fin g the the try in g w er e t h e p r e d o m in a n t movem ent: No, h is is m a in ly th e m t o w a r d s a d i f f e r e n t country, shall d isc u ssin g is a god and th a t he has been b r i e f e d im p o ssib le in c ite m e n t io n e d i n presence it that w here th e gods appear C harles’ is are Ju p iter, jou rn ey . reveal the if e v e ry th in g i n also not the as The passages h eld is d istu rb a n c e , w ho le u n i v e r s e , good, the c re a tiv e sp iral t im e T h is of h is and L a r s o n ’ s d ia lo g u e they so have among m et, a lie re v e la tio n But the him . in the la s t p olice The fin d s circ le , the pages of the n o vel, C harles and the sp iral, changes the c ir c l e m e d ic a l its is clo sed. in stitu tio n d ire c tio n , now many o n ly keeps toward de stru c tio n . The m e d ic a l staff, a tte m p t to co n fused d ia lo g u e s be the make shock after C harles and record C harles talks, some rem e m b er , strange treatm ent. W a t k in s p re sc rib in g But b efo rehan d. of about h is h is total fo r C harles a n n ih ila tio n and of hope, There i s an atm osphere o f the has land sim ilar w ay not to alw ays M artha F o u r - G a te d C i t y , h is harm ony w i l l h is attem pt w ill and in to m ake adulth o o d. the the c o lle g e not w ill by blood e x p e r ie n c e in h ab it on and the an w ith trie s w ill as war in court. end not up in p rev ail. among them a n d t h e b e l i e f stain e d Quest’ s Y. exp e rie n c e s d e stru c tio n d iv in ity last c hild ho o d c o m p a n io n s , and been The D o c to r Y u g o s la v ia and th e n about an e x p e r ie n c e i n W ar, im p a tient adventures. episo d es first, gets drugs a n g u ish . isla n d that In in a The w i t h them : ... t h i s l a n d t h a t w as s o r i c h a n d s o b e a u t i f u l w o u ld f l o w e r i n t o a l o v i n g harm o n y t h a t w as a s much a memory a s a d r e am f o r t h e f u t u r e . I t w as a s i f e v e ry one o f us had l i v e d s o , once, upon a tim e ; a t another tim e , in a co un try l i k e t h i s . . . among p e o p l e d e s c e n d e d fr o m a n a t u r a l r o y a l t y . . . We w e r e a l l bound i n together by another tim e , another a i r . A n y t h i n g p e t t y a n d i g n o b l e w as a n o u t l a w , we c o u l d remember o n l y n o b i l i t y . C p . 2 1 2 3 In another their when and passage, courses the the poor lio n W atk in s r e f e r s were on our sid e, and meek and w o u ld lie down the t o a G o lden Age: w hose v ic to ry h u m b le w ith the had la m b , “the stars w o u ld in h e rited and a be the lo v in g at in last Earth, h ar m o n y 117 w o u ld p r e v a i l b e g in n in g w ill but blossom . the voyage d iv in e o v er the the t im e in is C harles* d a n g les record over let dow n fr o m e a c h these te n d rils as personal length o uter pot, g ra sp in g the of t im e : is to ju st T im e W a tk in s’ . yet see the on the are a w av e . the - w ell, runs on an urgency i n memory of fa m ily and does do of the sid e , but The s t o r y of d e sc rib e d by not of h is W hen the they can reach the in te r ru p ts C harles of the sw in g in g th eir understands te n d ril’ s C harles ev e ry th in g ev e ry th in g a summer grows. w in d , g iv in g p lant o p p o site the a lso that in have in w ants its the and t h a t ’ s own w in d . what I t h a t ? C p .2 4 5 5 . r h y th m w h ic h "c u r i n g " peo p le. h is the t im e dev elo pm en t, success Why c a n ’ t y o u s e e h o sp ital is young the a by T i m i n g " C p. 2 4 5 5 . The of H o n ey su ckle Cp. 2 4 2 5 . m onths, the im p o r t a n c e the s id e h is one so s o m e tim e s fo r of Last c a m e llia still som e p ro m ise w ith "T h e w a ll garden. c am ellia in n er A fter sam e w i t h There i s re c o g n ize h is or b y h im : a of t h e w ho le p o in t . Doctor. recovered on t h e resp o n sib le the in story where m em ories a yard" reach that pot both, surfer have to s a y , the plan t. "T i m e i s "T h e And i t ’ s of the doctor w ere T e n d rils to new the s a il o r e xp erien c es te n d rils by about the a n c ie n t m e m o r ie s , the that lo n g try not th e garden above i t . fr o m tw o that clasp s of an is w ith th e C ry sta l. d e sc rib e d w a ll other the w eight t im e attem pt: it reach te n d r il the that if growth. to of p re c io u s recaptures w all th is separated tw o The fu tu re memory contacts thus the r e t a in in g hon ey su ckle the h is u n p e rc e iv e d next down W a t k in s w here re v e a lin g The scenery i s my door i s C p .2 1 33 . W h i l e r e c o r d i n g som e o f h i s and s t i l l co llege. Earth" o rd in ary n o t rem em ber h is d iffers fro m W atk in s h as not life . w ork. He does not But t h e r e i s 118 an a n x ie ty than the and urgency s t a f f ’ s. in sid e W atk in s h im know s w h ic h that has t im e a is d iffe re n t ru n n in g source short for s o m e t h in g h e h a s t o d o : " ’ T h e r e ’ s so m ething I h av e t o re a c h . I have to t e l l p e o p l e . P e o p l e d o n ’ t kn o w i t b u t i t i s a s i f they a r e l i v i n g i n a p o iso n ed a i r . They a r e not awake. T h e y ’ ve been knocked on t h e h e a d , lo n g a g o , a n d t h e y d o n ’ t know t h a t i s w hy t h e y a r e l i v i n g l i k e z o m b ie s a n d k i l l i n g e a c h o t h e r ’ C p .2 4 83 . T h is and d ia lo g u e a frie n d d estru c tiv e we b e come out take is h is fo r he w ill us of How me w i t h the C harles W atk in s' spiral through easier h is of d iffe re n t? and th is betw een can we get you?’ “ all id e n tity first but portrayed in both out? yo u He you h im fin d d e c id e s treatm ent, tim in g , w ish asks If another to evade “ ’ But out, to tim e s. how can you the w ay that S o m e tim e s C p. 2 4 8 D . the w ill try b e lie v in g see. p atien t m aybe it is He th in k s to in t e g r a t e the voyage in and t o t h e w o r ld o u t s i d e c o n f i n e m e n t . how ever, treatm ent forgets Stoke, V io le t to get out than other sp iral, the that C p .2 4 8 3 . shock “I t ’ s p re v io u s e x p e r ie n c e s A fter reveals h av e a c h a n c e t o rem em ber, The V io le t r e p e titio n . e lectric t im e : and h is m oves w ith on in its shock, d iv in ity and d e stru c tiv e W atk in s task. course. rem em bers H is fa ilu re h is is a m e s s a g e t o R o se m a ry B a i n e s : Dear M iss B a in e s , I am s u r e y o u w i l l b e p l e a s e d t o h e a r t h a t I am f u l l y r e c o v e r e d a g a i n , a n d s o e x p e c t n o t t o b e s u c h a b u r d e n on your c o n t i n u i n g k i n d i n t e r e s t . I n c i d e n t a l 1 y I h a v e t o th a n k y o u f o r your p a t i e n c e on t h e n i g h t w hen I i n f l i c t e d m y s e l f o n y o u i n w hat w as a n u n f o r g i v a b l e w ay. P l e a s e a p o l o g i z e on my b e h a l f t o Mr. L a r s o n . A s I s h a l l b e b a c k i n C a m b r id g e a n d e x t r e m e l y b u s y I am a f r a i d I s h a l l n o t b e a b l e t o a c c e p t 119 your v ery k in d i n v i t a t i o n to d in n e r . Yours s i n c e r e l y , C harles So, W atk in s o rd in ary is fin a lly life and To sum happened. "c u r e d ". beg in s up, to liv e he is extent a th is p oin t tw o human b e in g in d iv id u a l. n o rm alcy and Laing is the has "a in tro je c tio n e xp e rie n c e " C p .2 7 3 . of the w e ll h is o rg a n ize d as the reality . "I" ness tran sfo rm p eo p le. if som e need fo r and W atk in s C harles’ had is voyage He have of h is in has never b eco m es the sam e to be review ed: to W atk in s* of a norm al P o litic s of re p re ssio n , sp irit W a tk in s’ the growth as and health y E x p e rie n c e , d e n ia l, voyage that splittin g , fo r m s o f d e s t r u c t i v e be a in , actio n it is on true m atter by a of the m a n d a la as of the Crystal to reality What change of h allu c in ate d sho uld in the be done re la tio n to among p s y c h o t h e r a p y w o u ld h a v e b e e n i m p o r t a n t respected: e xp erien c e Laing has dev elopm en t. T h e replacem ent resp o n sible fo r the w ith in b e h a v io r. w o u ld been structure m a n ip u la te d life , sh a rin g p seu d o - existen ce. The transcendental reality lo v e, memory t h e o r d i n a r y w o r ld d e n i e s h im t h e t r a n s f e r e n c e th is p h y sic ia n ’ s in C o n sid erin g d e stru c tiv e a the c o n trib u te d and other transparent thin g s aspects of and In if the of C lassic s. has said , product "n o r m a lc y " i n as c h a ra c te ristic s p ro je c tio n , that ba sic t o w h ic h c o n fin e m e n t recovers "n o r m a l". r e p e t it iv e and b o rin g p ro fesso r At He W a tk in s Cp. 2 3 0 3 w ith said , of p a tie n t’ s h is is th is t im e the to grow up and p sy c h o th e ra p ists. the b a sis h is The fo r the p a tie n t’ s lo v e by drugs and shocks death in the n o rm alcy of is h is N o ie s *D o ug las B o llin g , Descent in t o H ell, P r a tt and L. S. 1 0 7 4 3 , p. 1 3 S . p. 1 3 3 . aB o l 1 i n g , p p .136- 7. p. 1 9 9 . 5C i r l o t . p. 2 0 1 . °C ir 1 o t , p. 7 4 . in and Structure D o ris L e s s in g : Dembo C M a d is o n : 2Bol 1 i n g , 4C i r l o t , 'T h e m e in C ritic a l U n iv e rsity of B rie fin g S tud ies, for ed. W isc o n sin a A nnis Press, C O N C L U S !OH The Lessing te rrito rie s, opens up in the her d iffe re n t no vels "la n d s " p ro v id e a and new spaces p ersp ec tiv e w h ic h t o a p p r o a c h t r u e a n d h e a l t h y human r e l a t i o n s h i p s . that but it is p o ssib le frig h te n in g b asically to In order central b asic to aspects of of of the three of co n sider, areas in re latio n c ity The I a square, kno w led ge destroy we a r e in the c o s m ic for co nfro nted C ity , o p p o rtu n itie s fo r A and I see my the Anna’ s the C ity in and a ls o as after the liv in g the the others to a three presence of as a s ig n of and door as as Desert an Then, w e ll point in as as the lim its o f d e v e lo p m e n t . the c ir c l e w ith in w h ic h l e a d s to the C ry stal, voyage in . cap acities on o f growth. places in to H e ll, the Joy. w ay s life nodal of c le arin g in sid e w ay concentrate t h e basem ent a Descent w ith show opposed to a re a s th e task b e h av io r in the and the The G o lden Notebook, basem ent balance to F irst, p oint a fter fear on ric h u n d e rta k in g . and w an t the "la n d s " of depends exp erien ces and f r a g i l i t y B rie fin g of e x p e rie n c e s I in to explore These fr o m Th ey show transcendence a n a ly sis C o ld ridge’ s p o te n tia l1y h e alth ie r n o vels, and understand that in of n o vels. Four- Gated Mark betw een s o l i d i t y F in ally , my of s te rility betw een in nature. voyage F re e m a n a n d W u l f , in d ic a to r in n er the co n clu sio n s, te rrito rie s the hum an opposed s u m m a r iz e d iffe re n t I voyage i n the e xp erien c e a person i s "la n d " t w o women, the success s e e and a n a ly z e of a p o ssib ilitie s w ith the undertake aspects the co n fro n tatio n B e sid e s, to that of h a rm o n io u sly p oints to In three the human w ith b e in g s others a to and 122 w ith t h e cosm os. u po n d e stru c tio n the w orld. and But L e s s i n g i n s i s t s and T o our v ig o ro u s personal e le m e n t m o d ify r e l a t i o n s h i p s be a ctiva ted b e in g learn when offered of liv e s» go i n we d o to d esp ite not us. c o n flic ts L essing strength and on s h o w in g t h a t and search fa il Thus to the in tro duces Our the face life w ith hope. of we c a n b u i l d a self te n ac io u s cap acities m e a n in g o f the be c o m es and life to can e x p e rie n c e that is a and an voyage oppor t u n i t y . A lon g w ith c h r o n o lo g ica l d iv id e d of the and of the the w orld of the 6 0 s . At s ig n ifica n c e of and in to man th is tim e, the w ay s frag ility , in The Four- Gated in to L e s s i n g 's H ell. three b e i n g 's territo rie s and are a and Lessing , of N otebook; m atter" C ity ; of a threatened w ill by to the pow er of a of so lid ity B rie fin g and of a for a a bso rp tio n and of and abso rp tio n in exp lo re in betw een raw and the d e v e lo p m e n t and m entor fic tio n , d iv id e d and in d ic a te in a ck n o w led g in g , m e r g in g C rystal, the d isc u ssio n in the m e r g in g courage or b e in g S e p a ra tio n , n o vels the "s c h iz o p h r e n ic " o rg a n izin g , a s c h izo p h r e n ia the sep a ratio n G o lden "s p ir it tow ard p re se n tin g establish es consequences They are: of re c o g n ize is d iv id e d of to R o n ald L a in g and The the w ay a ttitu d e in Descent human of form s, by p o ssib le re latio n sh ip s. u n d e r t a k in g a voyage in . a rtistic is Lessing ’ s b e in g three d iffe r e n t sig n ifica n c e it movement d e te rio ratin g elabo rates in change co un tercultu ral about the m essage, d e v e lo p m e n t self the context th is show such the that in the d iffe re n t sc ie n c e of p sy c h ia try . D e s p ite she w rites, the A nn a sterile W u lf is forces able that to m ake h e r work on the c ritic ize b lack w hatever notebook and 123 show th a t i t the is power of de stru c tio n . alon g w ith one to dev elo p in c re a tio n the b lack and that crude m eans we c a n In exp o sitio n the chaos, a success of w hat new k in d of h er cap acity to say that Anna’ s and grow th b e lie v e of w e ll has the w rites betw een and the fo u r notebook by m eans of m e a n in g s : and is fifth the squares p. 2 5 3 . Saul and In W ulf, e x p e rie n c e s w ith such n e c e ssitie s and of the in notebook t o t h e raw in w ith secure be sure th is and the out that also of the on sense, in d ic a te Saul and "A n d but h er w hen te rrito rie s, k eeping Anna, I ste rility women t h a t W ulf both and is fo r m s w i t h i n the sec tio n s a F re e m a n are a I part balance p ro tago nist, c ircle fo ur of also se c tio n s Free w h ic h The the o n ly of part Free circ le that Women. Women lin k s and the r e m a in s The last suggested th e n o vel. of co lo ured the go lden sentence w ith th e London f l a t " o u tsid e s e p a r a tio n part by On t h e o n e the p lus the " T h e tw o women w e r e a l o n e i n se c tio n w ith in on life . fic tio n tw o d i s t i n c t encom passes C p .6 1 3 in go lden says we c a n liv e ch a rac teristic s and Anna of in d ic a te , to voyage W hen o n ly to cope the The of fo rces d ed ica ted c e rtain F re e m an d iffe re n t notebook d iffe re n t not our in n er life C p. 4 5 4 3 , m e a n in g wom en. who dark lig h t, w orker. balance Anna a exposed the p ercep tio n o f hand, relies of the h er is strength" as of p a in fu l all case, what strength Anna a so c ia l The tw o a ssem ble frig h te n in g . fo r A n n a 's She betw een who i s as in her. fig h t the is exp erien c es. of voyage to it a p erio d i n is of that A n n a 's of abandonm ent exp lo ratio n opposed ones, "c o m p a r t m e n t ". the d ir e c t io n th e re d and th e b lu e notebooks reproduces and c o n ta in s and as The y ello w , c o m p artm e n ts in p o ssib le of the c ircle betw een a novel the are 124 m e a n in g f u l in and W ulf a r e is face other not I see in hand, k isse d is c o n flic ts w ith and fifth the than to a C p .6 3 8 3 . Free b e lie f in the the to p ro te c t and the by a lie n areas: d e c ip h e re d w ith the b e in g Laing , grow, to human dev elo p The p u b lic a tio n The lo o k in g the unusual at of the the exp e rie n c e s. and in to in content not and can the of the able in to order understand W ulf show The and her in v a s io n s e xp e rie n c e s The women o p p o sitio n and dream s in be tw o easily n e c e ssity of b u t most i m p o r t a n t l y , we understand not aw areness that that forego o n ly for any h arm o n y on th e p la n e t . F o u r - G a ted C i t y n everth eless W it h work c irc le m ust "s c h iz o p h r e n ic ". sc h izo p h re n ic The Anna i s of a lw ay s b e in g s the n e c e ssitie s fo r m w ith Thus on tw o and has to f i g h t W ulf. hum an. and l i f e of in o rg an iza tio n save re la tio n sh ip s person, such of the T h e o n l y w ays F re em an w i l l "T h e the o p p o site s. and m ore i m p o r t a n t fo r m s . both e xp e rie n c e s the out p a i n f u l l y w hen n e c e s s a r y , fo r to is the d ig n ity o p p o rtu n ity w ay p ain fu l whereas as F re e m a n . and v e r y im p o r t a n t w ith in p a r t o f her F r e e m a n /W u l f in ten sely , Lessing , w ill the p erso n a litie s d iffe re n t liv in g save is d ire c tio n s so c ia l says: p oints squares fo r m se c tio n , w ith is F re e m a n T h is is fifth a rtistic co - existen ce o f that and what Women i l l u s t r a t e th e W ulf The sentence or women. opposed w o rrie d But u n fin ish e d a n n ih ila te d iv isio n s them . w ay L e s s i n g betw een of a v o id c lo sin g the part tw o w ith in the c ir c le . o rg a n izin g p ro tago nist The e ith e r of the th e de m o n stratio n th a t i t is s e p a r a tio n the squares of it separated" a v o id in g study w ay w riting . and in the a reveals G o ld e n Notebook not concerns together ten ta tiv e , feelin g s. to w hat M artha’ s b rin g s w ith C o n s id er e d suffers and a it n ew v isio n ary in te n s e ly Lynda’ s a w ith e x p e rie n c e s 123 in t h e b a s e m e n t ro o m , the "w a lls de a lin g of w ith the L e s s i n g o p e n s u p a t e r r i t o r y o f work m in d ". o r d in a r y life areas o f s e n s it iv it y » its p o te n tia litie s. in n e r city , tra n sfo rm a tio n . sp iritu al The after m e r g in g v o y a g in g w ith id e n titie s im p o r t a n t in to s t r e s s o f develo pm ent i s the case of the We h a v e to o n ly earned, be L essing care w ill keep g iv e s of the have r e a d y fo r th is so ld ie rs a in m in d t h a t or the accepted fo r m t o part the strength w h ic h of have center a d iffe re n t as to lon g of the w alls c ity , of v ie w that a upon In o n ly k in d c ity there is very th is novel, who still we a lo t take p o in t", m o dify e g o tism that in "c o u ld and on as c ity "n o d a l ruins shows is tw o d isa stro u s. those of structured of v io le n ce , in n er C p. 1523). of p o ssib ilitie s proves the The im p o r t a n c e It The use of place fr ag ility . the to cra sh in g v ie w . the w orld and th a t and the of of in d ic a te s common g ift" been room fu sio n a b u ild M ark’ s p o ints the secret in n e r c ity Lynda’ s and settin g a llo w in g outer them selv es, of and b e a u ty and g iv e s u n d e rsta n d in g fr o m t h e best The of of center of im m e n se on t h e s e l f in n e r its and not e a s i l y a ch ie v e d . a rtistic re la tio sh ip s v io le n ce . that the pow er the the in d ic a te s and d ire c tio n the be through sense, person in the offer basem ent so lid ity th is the in re- u n ites te rro r another in h er can w ill the voyage M artha’ s C ity , p oin t room w h ile the to of w ith Lynda room octogonal The voyage i n F o u r - G a ted n o dal b a se m e n t floors. the w hereas the r e g e n e ra tio n transcendence carries s u p r a n o r m a l i t y a n d t h e work L ik e the M a r th a w ith in are of and not work t o d o on o u r s e l v e s . C harles c le a rin g the W a tk in s, center in of the B rie fin g , stone kno w s c ity . The the im p o r t a n c e im p o rtan ce of of the 126 task, in th is secret of how ever. the W a tk in s the he is has body is n o tio n of of lig h tn e ss The in im p o r t a n c e the stone c o s m ic in sid e the on They are l i k e doors ex p e rie n c e that w ith the v e r y im p o r t a n t presupposes is the reality of the That w ho voyage of m ost in the G olden Notebook, F o u r - G a ted C ity fr o m to and the m ind. h is he thoughts feels the a to im p o r t a n c e the p re se n c e the of of of the e v il. s ig n ifica n c e g iv e n to the of m ind g iv e s a c h a r a c t e r is t ic substance thin kin g. . . the Crystal Cp. 0 0 3 . the the w eig h t new in the of and a Crystal W atk in s, the that he in has to w as a w ith in the to m ind. attem p t and h as w a n te d h is of how ever, c irc le o rd in ary r e a lit y . remember to remember But W a t k in s transpose H is a Crystal the is by the p s y c h ia t r is t s . the fo rm al the personal B rie fin g , of realizes areas h e h a s a lw a y s v io le n t ly broken and d is r e g a rd e d The chan ge C h a rles h e av in e ss of knows fa ils to the that m o d ifie s of c learin g he task B rie fin g , new im p o r t a n c e part w as in , the th is in d ic a te The of of v e r y im p o r t a n t i n realizes sp iralled " keeping character he is that In d im e n s io n when the C ry sta l, I voyage thin g . the the areas w h ic h He and b esid e s realm , h e l p h im u n d e r s t a n d in sid e p ulsed A fter as But d iv isio n . thought square. th is make h im d i r e c t isla n d co n q u erin g by s i d e w it h o t h e r s a n d t h a t of C ry stal, "T h o u g h t .. . task sid e city atm osphere: another In im p o r t a n t W a tk in s. that body. harm ony. the and to i n t e g r a t i o n , to as the T h e F o ur- G ated C i t y . and in t e g r a t io n i s of d iv in ity h is to absorbed by a Crystal c o n scio u sn ess b lo o dy f e a s t s the co m p ared room i n m in d l i e s w h o len ess a tm o s p h e r e . be gathered, not He knows t h a t h i s co ldn ess may the octogonal n o tio n that n o vel, s e p a ra tio n m e r g in g of e xp e rie n c e s in The and a bso rp tio n in The r e s p e c tiv e ly , illu s tra te s D o ris \ 127 L e s s i n g 's v o y a g in g d e v e lo p m e n t in , e xp erien c es and in "s c h iz o p h r e n ic " of than the to u ltim a te b e in g three or d iv id e d 60s, taught a im fo r is cure proved us and w ill p sy c h ia try is of in a the id e a much m ore has much Lessin g’ s the these d y n a m ic three and the Id e a , m ore towards of of that The p ro g r e s sio n o f not is us and back In enough are p ain fu l is w ith seen the as an to the to teach n o vels. The a bso rp tio n of "T h e y " by the the is pow er of fr o m fa ilu re, r e la tio n sh ip s s t u d y and not a s of hope voyager W it h h i s of w ill reality there how ever, on t h e p l a n e t . o b ject that prevent reality that o rd in ary but B rie fin g , to task co n fro n ted L ain g says re p re ssio n , succeed. strong go al. re m e m b e r in g a n im p o r t a n t th e other ric h n e ss d e v e lo p m e n t th is b rin g in d iv id u a lity "t h e y " are d iv id e d , b u t a t t h e sam e t im e t h e s c i e n c e o f p s y c h i a t r y w o rk s try that characters b e in g The s u sta in s s c h izo p h ren ic L essing t h e a c h ie v e m e n t falsity , of sch izo p h ren ic. no vels the a g ain st to m e a n in g "n o r m a l" p eo p le. that be the C r y s t a l, the the courageous than the d u r in g of we w here an I n d i v i d u a l that needs a tt e n t io n and re s p e c t. The G o lden routes to Notebook, a n n ih ila tio n M other co n so la tio n o f f e r s less Sugar a large co n q u erin g Lynda, C ity , p ills. and alon g is am ount u n d e rs ta n d in g th eir in and of a s u b m itte d c o n fin e m e n t of Anna o f d r e a m s. sugar Dorothy, co n stan tly T h e ir of u n d e rsta n d in g w ith h elp s d ifferen t to feel w ays. a g a in . e n e r g y and ten d s to le a d Anna t o and e s t a b l i s h e d i n t e r p r e t a t i o n such fo llo w d e c id e s the m ino r to to Freem an character shock h o sp ita ls m ost A nn a r e f u s e s in tim a te is in The treatm ents, a s ig n of n e c e ssitie s. The But h er the s a fe to re c e iv e fig h t b esid es In fo r the the W ulf. F o u r - G a te d drugs the lack M artha and of is 128 in terested in a p sy ch o th erap eutic Lamb b e c a u s e o f F o rtunately, on h er attem pts Lynda gets telep athic im portance p eo p le of not who exp e r ie n c e d not allow the most B ut f a r h im im p o sin g set In t im e are to respected and and p artic ip atio n in w ith of them selv es g iv e in te n s e w ork, and a L essin g b u ild s upon w hat h a s and the d ir e c t io n of separate in the myth n e w ... ’ " tim b e r sin c e what CGN, p. 4 5 9 3 . the she allow slab had the seen it, the Y. do destroy in g its h arm o n y . b e in g s and in a are th eir I grow th of of feel w ith a tim b e r. m in u t e a n d h e a l t h y w ays co n n o ta tio n in in v o lv e m e n t , "I the w orld. the psyche of our w an t and in voyages in to be able to the rec u rrin g h is to r y , or th in k d e lig h t flo w er: In of p erc eiv in g Anna s a y s : what of and human c o n tin u a tio n sees a a destroyed M artha h u lk Just w ith th e w orld and w ith o ld and c y c l i c , new, X. and the has thus in d iv id u a lity w ay been harbours. is or w orks in m y s e l f w hat i s fr o m can greeted safe Doctors o n ly c o n flic t d iffe re n t b e lie v e s who to c o u n try and p la n e t . w i t h t h o s e who a r e i n re la tio n sh ip s B rie fin g , t r u e human r e l a t i o n s h i p s L essin g ’ s the d e v e lo p m e n t I n d i c a t e s if th eir of d e a lin g to In cosm os work o b lig a tio n s Crystal , the that enhances sailo r L e s s i n g 's t h e c o m m u n ity , The n e c e s s i t i e s the the order in and Dr. d isc o v e rie s. that norm s to remember d iffe re n t d ig n ifie d work cata stro p h ic . e x p e rie n c e a is se e in g th e ra p ists d iffe re n tly . fr o m b e i n g p e s s i m i s t i c , t reality of a q u its personal group of treatm ent voyage im p o rtan t a react shock the kn o w a It and of the to but to d e s t r o y her a b ilities. feel consequences new h is treatm ent that that "T u r n in g the less yello w flow er lik e w ise , has had a m ig h t be h u lk of rig h t, than tw o em erged she days fr o m a t c r e v i c e " CFGC, p .863. W atk in s, the aw areness o f our 129 human p o ssib ilities: u n d e rsta n d in g transcend the of it in presence of Id e n tific a tio n in one group, of the d ia g n o sed "s p e c t e r uses of "T h e of a o t h e r 's by CT P E , the W atk in s' whose E xp erien c e. over whereas Jesse in d iv id u a ls. is V Iasto s W atk in s have recorded fo rgets false p .7 3 ). the to the of rig h t so c ie ty moment at re d e fin itio n of They stress to large consequence o f such f a l s i t y the that to control them d ia g n o se and b l in d n e s s , m e a n in g our of eg o tism h u m a n it y W a tk in s, R. D. an th is Lain g : e x a m p le than Jesse w h ic h Doctor alon e. “less has X. , and p riv ile g e d " how t o They human of C h arles' an i n s t i t u t i o n free. of P o litic s and in t im e s h o sp ital. p a ir a d m in iste r, set to a or beco m es and Y. a p ro fe ssio n , ou r own The is voyage la b el of m e a n in g f u l Doctor the rig h t and is of d e stru c tiv e t h e m ental there sense C harles Laln g’ s im p o s e illu s tra te and Lessing and of u n re a lity to our W atk in s in re a c tio n s, undertakes ghost and less that T h e y kn o w w hat d r u g s and id e n titie s. "D o r is voyage state the in to false p sy c h ia trists, C harles belo n g to a group, they endorsem ent case h is C h a r l e s 's p sy c h ia trists in P r o p h e c y ", co n sid ers But control V Iasto s a realities gods us" voyage re a c tio n s so c ia l m u rd ere d destroy that the "w e ", tr e m e n d o u s and and She a when W ith be no need to a general of p. 1 5 ) . the w ill clear im a g e the CB, know there m akes the catastrophe M a rio n fa ilu re . fo r to o f a m u r d e r e d g o d " when h e l e a v e s P sy ch o p o litics p atien ts L ain g "s c h izo p h r e n ic " To c r i t i c b e lie v e He haunt as sailo rs" others, I. specters to all among p e o p l e l e a d s " t h e m ': returned of control ghosts, are cap acities favo r the take c la ssify are our r e la tio n sh ip s. s id e "W e cla ssify have b e in g s. the As a L a in g and L e s s in g c a ll groups, and lack p ro fe ssio n s of and in v o l v e m e n t In m atters that In e v ita b ly In c lu d e lead to a human b e i n g s , catastrophe. ness there is a lo t t o b e rem em bered b u t we h a v e n e v e r The fe a r of to for fig h t the d isc o v ery b o n d among o u r s e l v e s . sense, is the is no freedom sailo rs. of in wo a r e ruins true re la tio n sh ip s When we t r a n s c e n d need of to im p o s e say ing "O u r the presence nam es We h a v e a common I n t e r e s t are of not in the M aybe to s t a r t . ou r cap acities and favo r I. us, trie d a s p a c e and tim e , th e voyage in w ill m ade in d iv id u a lly . in h ib its The voyage t o in n e r p lan et has t h e b e g i n n i n g o f a n ew u n d e r s t a n d i n g o f our the u n iv erse. there flo w ers w hat "I" the a fra id fo r k n o w in g Our and p ara d o x ic a lly , lo o k in g of nature in th is presence in of others, There im p o rta n t. h ealth y We a n d a common d e s t i n y " . is are o n ly all B IB L IO G R A P H Y A - P r im a r y C i r l o t , J u a n - E d u a r d o . A D i c t i o n a r y o f S y m b o ls . H en ley : R o u tle d g e & Kegan P a u l , 1 9 7 1 . Lalng, R o n a l d D. ----------- . The D iv id e d S elf. Sobre Loucos e SSos. -----------. T h e Books, 1 9 6 8 . P o litic s L e s s in g , D o ris. B r ie fin g Books, 1 9 86 . fo r of New Y o r k : SSo P au lo : E xp erien c e. 2nd ed. London and Random H o u s e , 1969. B rasilie n se , 1982. New a Descent in to H e ll. York: B alla n tin e London: G rafto n T h e F o u r - G a ted C i t y . London: G rafto n Books, 1986. The G o ld e n Notebook. London: G rafto n Books, 1986. B - Secondary B a r n o u w , Dag m ar. " D i s o r d e l y Com pany: From T h e G o l d e n T h e F o u r - G a ted C i t y " . C o n te m p o r a r y L i t e r a t u r e p p. 4 9 1 - 5 1 4 . N o te b o o k t o 14 C 19735, B o l l i n g , D o u g l a s . " S t r u c t u r e a n d Them e i n B r i e f i n g f o r a D e s c e n t in to H e l l ". I n D o ris L e s s in g : C r it ic a l S tu d ies. E d. A nnis Pratt and L. S. Dembo. M a d is o n : U n iv e rs ity of W isc o n sin P r e s s , 1 9 7 4 , p p .133- 47. C h rist, Carol S p iritu a l P. D iv in g Deep and Sur f a c i n g Women W r i t e r s Q u est. 2n d ed. Boston: Beacon P r e s s , 1 9 8 6 . on K a p la n , Ja n e t S id n e y . "T h e L im it s o f C o n s c io u sn e ss i n t h e N o v els of D o ris L e s s in g ". Contem porary L ite ra tu re , 14 C19732>, pp. 5 3 6 - 4 9 . 132 K arl, F r e d e r i c k R. " D o r i s L e s s i n g i n t h e S i x t i e s : T h e New A n a to m y o f M e l a n c h o l y " . C o n t e m p o r a r y L i t e r a t u r e 1 3 C 1 9 7 2 3 , p p. 1 5 - 3 3 . M ay, R o llo . "T h e T h e r a p i s t a n d t h e J o u r n e y i n t o H e l l " . Q u a r t e r l y R e v i e w 2 5 , No. 4 C F a l l 1 9 8 6 3 , p p. 6 2 9 - 4 1 . P e rra k is, P h y llis Sternberg. "D o r is Notebook: S e p a r a t io n and S y m b io s is ". 4 C W in t e r 1 9 8 1 3 , p p . 4 0 7 - 2 8 . M ic h ig an L essin g ’ s The A m e r ic a n Im a g o G o lden 3 8 , No. P ic k e rin g , Jean. "M a r x i s m a n d M a d n e s s : T h e Two F a c e s o f D o r i s L e s s i n g ’ s M y t h ". M o d e r n F i c t i o n S t u d i e s 2 6 , No. 1 C Sp rlng 1 9 8 0 3 , pp. 1 7 - 3 0 . Pratt, A nnis M a d is o n : and L. S . Dembo. D o ris L e ss in g : C ritic a l U n iv e r s it y of W isc o n sin P r e s s , 1 9 7 4 . S tu d ies. R ig n e y , B a r b a r a H i l l . Madness and S exu al P o l i t i c s N o vel. London U n i v e r s i t y o f W is c o n s in P r e s s , i n th e F e m in is t 1980. Sho w alter, 1985. Pantheon E lain e. The F e m a le M a la d y . New York: S i n g l e t o n , M a ry A nn . T h e C i t y a n d t h e V elds T h e F i c t i o n L e s s in g . London: A s s o c ia t e d U n i v e r s it y P r e s s , 1 9 7 7 . of Books, D o ris Size m o re , C h ristin e W. "R e a d in g the C ity as P alim p sest: The E x p e r ie n t ia l P e rc e p tio n o f the C it y i n D o ris L e s s i n g ’ s The F o u r - G a ted C i t y " . I n Women W r i t e r s a n d t h e C i t y , E s s a y s i n F e m i n i s t L i t e r a r y C r i t i c i s m . E d . S u s a n M. S q u i e r . K n o x v i l l e : U n i v e r s i t y o f T e n n e s s e e P r e s s , 1 9 8 4 , pp. 1 7 6 - 9 0 . V l a s t o s , M a r lo n . " D o r i s L e s s i n g a n d R. D. Lalng: P sy ch o p o litics a n d P r o p h e c y " . PMLA 9 1 , No. 2 C M arch 1 9 7 6 3 , pp. 2 4 5 - 5 8 . W alk er, M elissa G. "D o r is L essin g ’ s The F o u r - G a te d C ity : C o n s c i o u s n e s s a n d C om m unity - A D i f f e r e n t H i s t o r y " . S o u t h e r n R e v i e w 1 7 , No. 1 C J a n u a r y 1 9 8 1 3 , p p. 9 7 - 1 2 0 .